in_o deserto_fw-la penetralibus_fw-la in_o penetralibus_fw-la and_o then_o for_o the_o space_n of_o certain_a hundred_o yer_n together_o you_o can_v not_o name_n what_o preacher_n or_o pastor_n your_o church_n have_v but_o thê°_n to_o flee_v into_o privi_fw-la place_n and_o to_o lack_v open_a preacher_n 24_o math._n 24_o be_v direct_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 8._o prover._n 8._o and_o express_o against_o the_o commamment_n of_o our_o saviour_n 62._o isai_n 62._o who_o wisdom_n cry_v in_o the_o top_n of_o the_o way_n and_o in_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n who_o whatchmenâease_v not_o to_o speak_v both_o day_n and_o âight_n upon_o the_o wall_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la in_o who_o house_n the_o candle_n stand_v upon_o the_o candlestick_n to_o geve_v light_n to_o all_o man_n 5._o math._n 5._o who_o faith_n must_v be_v confess_v with_o the_o mouth_n 44._o rom_n 10._o &_o 1_o philip._n 2._o psal_n 44._o who_o gospel_n must_v not_o be_v blush_v at_o who_o servant_n shine_v like_o star_n who_o spouse_n be_v most_o beawtiful_a through_o internal_a faith_n and_o charity_n varietatibus_fw-la circumamicta_fw-la varietatibus_fw-la be_v yet_o garnish_v about_o with_o variety_n of_o diverse_a tongue_n which_o be_v daily_o hear_v to_o preach_v and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v daily_o see_v in_o god_n service_n among_o the_o catholics_n aeternum_fw-la memor_n ero_fw-la nominis_fw-la populi_n confitebuntur_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la which_o spouse_n also_o have_v promise_v to_o be_v mindful_a of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n from_o generation_n to_o generation_n in_o so_o much_o that_o many_o peple_n shall_v confess_v and_o geve_v praise_n to_o god_n for_o ever_o age_n after_o age_n if_o such_o a_o gloriouse_a a_o manifest_a and_o a_o beautiful_a church_n must_v be_v beleve_v then_o must_v wiclef_n hus_n and_o their_o fellow_n be_v avoid_v and_o our_o know_v manifest_a and_o in_o all_o generation_n most_o gloriouse_a church_n must_v be_v embrace_v which_o never_o lack_v a_o chief_a bishop_n iâ_n s._n peter_n chair_n with_o a_o number_n of_o bishop_n and_o faithful_a nation_n obey_v hâ_n doctrine_n and_o government_n the_o truth_n ãâã_d which_o catholik_n church_n and_o chair_n thâ_n i_o may_v the_o more_o effectal_o persuade_v treatise_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o treatise_n ãâã_d have_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o prove_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o reason_n and_o meaning_n oâ_n god_n word_n the_o which_o point_n alone_o if_o iâ_n be_v grant_v all_o other_o controversy_n arâ_n superfluous_a for_o all_o be_v conclude_v under_o one_o if_o one_o be_v appoint_v the_o chief_a shepherd_n by_o god_n over_o all_o since_o every_o man_n must_v hear_v and_o obey_v the_o shepherd_n voice_n 10._o joan._n 10._o i_o request_v most_o humble_o of_o your_o patience_n to_o read_v or_o to_o hear_v the_o whole_a treatise_n read_v which_o be_v not_o long_o and_o not_o to_o condemn_v the_o matter_n before_o it_o be_v well_o understand_v if_o my_o discourse_n be_v doubtful_a i_o be_o ready_a to_o make_v it_o plain_a if_o it_o seem_v to_o fail_v in_o proof_n a_o charitable_a unswere_n make_v unto_o it_o shall_v show_v by_o the_o âply_n how_o strong_a the_o argument_n general_o be_v concern_v the_o chief_a point_n thus_o take_v my_o leave_n i_o wish_v as_o well_o ãâã_d your_o worship_n as_o i_o do_v to_o myself_o beseech_v you_o not_o to_o miscontrue_a my_o do_n âut_v to_o take_v they_o so_o charitable_o as_o they_o âre_n mean_v for_o god_n be_v my_o witness_n the_o âhing_n i_o seek_v be_v as_o well_o the_o reduce_n of_o âhem_n to_o their_o mother_n church_n who_o be_v âon_v a_o stray_n as_o the_o stay_n of_o they_o who_o through_o man_n frailty_n begin_v to_o doubt_v of_o their_o faith_n which_o effect_n god_n grant_v through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n amen_n the_o chapiters_n of_o the_o treatise_n follow_v 1_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n fol._n 1._o 2_o that_o there_o be_v a_o primacy_n of_o spiritual_a government_n in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o it_o differ_v from_o secular_a government_n 16._o 3_o of_o the_o diverse_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o which_o be_v most_o literal_a 93._o 4_o these_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n have_v this_o literal_a meaning_n upon_o the_o o_o peter_n be_v make_v a_o rock_n to_o the_o end_n thou_o shall_v stout_o confess_v the_o faith_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 108._o 5_z the_o father_n teach_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v this_o rock_n 136._o 6_o the_o reason_n which_o the_o father_n bring_v to_o declare_v why_o s._n peter_n be_v this_o rock_n 155_o 7_o the_o authority_n allege_v by_o m._n jewel_n to_o prove_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o this_o rock_n prove_v against_o himself_o 171._o 8_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o other_o which_o follow_v 189._o 9_o that_o s._n peter_n pass_v far_o the_o other_o apostle_n in_o some_o kind_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n 194._o 10_o that_o the_o apostle_n beside_o the_o prerogative_n of_o their_o apostleship_n have_v also_o authority_n to_o be_v particular_a bishop_n 204._o ââ_o how_o far_o s._n peter_n do_v either_o excel_v or_o âs_v equal_a with_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o aâstolike_a office_n 2â0_n ââ_o that_o s._n peter_n prerogative_n above_o the_o âher_n apostles_n be_v most_o manifest_o see_v by_o âs_n chief_a bishoply_n power_n 232._o ââ_o that_o the_o pastoral_a authority_n of_o s._n peâr_n be_v ordinary_a 267._o ââ_o that_o his_o ordinary_a authority_n belonge_v to_o one_o bishop_n alone_o 279_o ââ_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o one_o âdinary_a pastor_n who_o succede_v in_o s._n âeârs_n chair_n 305._o ââ_o that_o the_o good_a emperor_n and_o print_n do_v never_o think_v themselves_o supreme_a âeads_n of_o the_o church_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n 378._o ââ_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o anâchrist_n himself_o 421._o â8_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o any_o âember_n of_o antichrist_n concern_v his_o doctrine_n 464._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o supremacy_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n after_o he_o the_o first_o chapter_n in_o write_v to_o and_o fro_o concern_v the_o supremacy_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n after_o he_o great_a controversy_n be_v fall_v out_o the_o which_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v the_o better_o open_v i_o think_v good_a to_o propose_v in_o order_n the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o say_a question_n the_o catholic_n believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sit_v in_o s._n peter_n chaier_n be_v by_o the_o appointment_n of_o christ_n himself_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n who_o voice_n every_o sheep_n ought_v to_o hearken_v unto_o the_o protestant_n on_o the_o other_o side_n deny_v not_o only_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o only_o the_o supremacy_n of_o s._n peter_n but_o also_o they_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o primacy_n nor_o any_o one_o chief_a government_n in_o the_o church_n at_o al._n therefore_o the_o first_o question_n must_v be_v whether_o it_o be_v against_o âhe_n word_n of_o god_n or_o no_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o his_o church_n any_o primacy_n or_o chief_a authority_n the_o second_o be_v whether_o s._n peter_n have_v the_o say_a primacy_n or_o no._n the_o three_o whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v it_o after_o s._n peter_n concern_v s._n peter_n we_o fall_v again_o into_o diverse_a new_a question_n as_o it_o shall_v now_o appear_v when_o simon_n the_o son_n of_o jona_n be_v first_o bring_v unto_o christ_n by_o his_o brother_n andrew_n jesus_n look_v upon_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v simon_n the_o son_n of_o jona_n 1._o joan._n 1._o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n the_o which_o by_o interpretation_n be_v peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o stone_n or_o a_o rock_n here_o be_v the_o promise_n make_v that_o simon_n shall_v be_v call_v peter_n which_o name_n be_v derive_v of_o a_o rock_n or_o stone_n verily_o because_o he_o shall_v occupy_v that_o place_n in_o uphold_v the_o frame_n of_o christ_n militant_a church_n the_o which_o a_o stone_n occupi_v in_o hold_v up_o the_o house_n which_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o and_o when_o it_o please_v christ_n to_o choose_v unto_o he_o his_o twelve_o apostle_n than_o he_o give_v the_o say_a name_n unto_o simon_n surname_v he_o peter_z three_o 6._o mar._n 3._o luc._n 6._o when_o simon_n have_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n reveal_v to_o he_o from_o heaven_n have_v confess_v the_o same_o say_v 16._o math._n 16._o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n then_o jesus_n answer_v say_v unto_o
above_o all_o other_o be_v confess_v of_o all_o side_n to_o have_v be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a in_o all_o assemble_v and_o meeting_n to_o who_o by_o m._n jewel_n confession_n the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o first_o place_n do_v belong_v to_o directe_v and_o order_v bishop_n in_o their_o do_n 242._o in_o his_o reply_n 241._o &_o 242._o second_o because_o he_o only_o sit_v in_o saint_n peter_n chaier_n and_o be_v his_o lawful_a successor_n three_o because_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o world_n have_v take_v it_o so_o and_o so_o have_v practise_v in_o deed_n for_o ever_o but_o even_o by_o our_o adversary_n confession_n from_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n zosimus_n and_o leo_n and_o so_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o although_o if_o i_o have_v no_o far_o proufe_v this_o alone_o be_v never_o able_a to_o be_v avoid_v yet_o i_o have_v so_o many_o other_o proof_n that_o i_o be_o more_o trouble_v what_o to_o leave_v unsay_v than_o i_o be_o to_o seek_v what_o may_v be_v say_v i_o have_v choose_v to_o speak_v of_o that_o point_n special_o which_o be_v of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o hard_o for_o there_o be_v no_o great_a objection_n against_o saint_n peter_n supremacy_n then_o to_o say_v objection_n the_o objection_n that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o he_o be_v the_o same_o rock_n the_o same_o pastor_n the_o same_o confirmour_n of_o their_o brother_n whereby_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v have_v no_o more_o than_o they_o have_v and_o consequent_o that_o all_o bisshoppe_n be_v as_o good_a as_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o which_o objection_n if_o i_o shall_v only_o answer_v answer_v the_o answer_v by_o demand_v of_o the_o protestant_n in_o what_o gospel_n or_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v write_v that_o every_o other_o apostle_n be_v the_o same_o rock_n which_o s._n matthew_n testify_v s._n peter_n to_o have_v be_v see_v they_o have_v bind_v themselves_o to_o believe_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o express_o write_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 16._o matth._n 10_o &_o 16._o they_o be_v not_o able_a so_o to_o reply_v that_o their_o own_o conscience_n may_v justly_o be_v quiet_a for_o if_o they_o bring_v i_o forth_o s._n cyprian_n eccles_n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n or_o s._n hierom_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v no_o evangelist_n i_o show_v it_o write_v thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n and_o thou_o be_v peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o rock_n or_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o rock_n for_o as_o s._n hierom_n witness_v 2._o lib._n 1._o ad_fw-la gal._n c._n 2._o that_o which_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n call_v petra_n the_o hebrew_n and_o syrian_n call_v cephan_n let_v they_o show_v it_o write_v where_o s._n matthew_n or_o s._n john_n be_v call_v such_o a_o rock_n or_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o such_o a_o condition_n and_o quality_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o he_o how_o unhappy_a be_v man_n now_o a_o day_n that_o whereas_o they_o have_v most_o plain_a scripture_n in_o all_o point_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o none_o at_o all_o against_o the_o same_o yet_o they_o pretend_v by_o the_o very_a scripture_n to_o overcomme_v the_o catholic_n and_o by_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o god_n word_n which_o they_o neither_o understand_v nor_o love_n they_o have_v among_o pedlar_n win_v the_o spur_n and_o among_o the_o ignorant_a have_v get_v the_o opinion_n of_o knouledge_n but_o see_v there_o be_v a_o infinite_a treasure_n in_o god_n word_n to_o prove_v those_o thing_n whereby_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v fortify_v i_o will_v take_v upon_o i_o this_o one_o point_n for_o this_o time_n to_o show_v by_o what_o mean_v s._n peter_n exell_v the_o other_o apostle_n wherein_o i_o will_v proceed_v in_o this_o order_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o s._n peter_n excel_v the_o apostle_n in_o some_o kind_n of_o honour_n and_o dignity_n the_o apostle_n have_v two_o kind_n of_o dignity_n the_o one_o proper_a to_o their_o apostleship_n the_o other_o common_a with_o all_o bishop_n how_o far_o s._n peter_n be_v above_o or_o equal_v with_o they_o in_o the_o apostolic_a function_n that_o s._n peter_n great_a prerogative_n above_o the_o apostle_n be_v most_o manifest_o know_v by_o his_o supremacy_n in_o the_o bishoplie_n power_n of_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o s._n peter_n bishoplie_n authority_n be_v a_o ordinary_a power_n that_o it_o must_v continue_v in_o some_o one_o bishop_n that_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o who_o s._n peter_n ordinary_a power_n and_o supremacy_n rest_v that_o s._n peter_n pass_v far_o the_o other_o apostle_n in_o some_o kind_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n the_o ix_o chap._n if_o what_o soever_o authority_n any_o apostle_n have_v concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n s._n peter_n have_v the_o same_o and_o yet_o if_o beside_o he_o have_v very_o many_o thing_n of_o great_a importance_n promise_v and_o give_v to_o he_o alone_o which_o no_o man_n else_o have_v it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o controversy_n that_o s._n peter_n pass_v a_o great_a way_n the_o other_o apostle_n in_o some_o kind_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n otherwise_o if_o he_o have_v no_o more_o authority_n than_o they_o or_o if_o his_o privilege_n have_v be_v only_o personal_a as_o the_o love_n be_v which_o our_o saviour_n bear_v towards_o s._n john_n who_o lie_v upon_o his_o breast_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n certeinlie_o s._n peter_n shall_v either_o have_v have_v nothing_o at_o all_o commit_v to_o he_o above_o and_o beside_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n 13._o joan._n 13._o or_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v only_o some_o temporal_a privilege_n and_o not_o any_o such_o function_n as_o have_v appertein_v to_o the_o perpetual_a establishment_n of_o christ_n church_n but_o now_o 10_o matth._n 10_o for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v not_o only_a first_o among_o the_o twelve_o but_o also_o he_o have_v the_o promise_n to_o be_v call_v cephas_n or_o a_o rock_n 1_o joan_n 1_o before_o the_o twelve_o be_v choose_v and_o be_v real_o name_v peter_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o choice_n 3._o marc._n 3._o and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o although_o both_o s._n john_n baptist_n have_v confess_v christ_n godhead_n before_o 1._o joan._n 1._o and_o nathanael_n have_v say_v thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n thou_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n yet_o only_o peter_n confession_n be_v make_v long_o after_o be_v so_o high_o reward_v that_o christ_n say_v to_o he_o alone_o thou_o be_v peter_n 16._o matth_n 16._o and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v namely_o promise_v to_o peter_n alone_o 16_o matth._n 16_o and_o whereas_o the_o tribute_n of_o didrachma_fw-la be_v due_a for_o the_o first_o beget_v of_o every_o family_n 17_o num._n 3._o josephus_n antiquit_fw-la li._n 13._o c._n 12_o chrysost_n in_o matth._n hom._n 59_o matth._n 17_o yet_o christ_n pay_v both_o for_o himself_o and_o for_o s._n peter_n also_o as_o be_v the_o underhead_n and_o first_o beget_v of_o his_o family_n the_o church_n and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n although_o a_o other_o boat_n also_o be_v at_o hand_n yet_o he_o teach_v the_o people_n out_o of_o s._n peter_n boat_n to_o show_v that_o in_o peter_n chair_n his_o doctrine_n shall_v always_o be_v stedy_o profess_v luc._n luc._n 5._o ambro._n in_o 5._o ca._n luc._n and_o whereas_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v sure_a to_o be_v sift_v of_o satan_n 22._o lucae_n 22._o yet_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n alone_o be_v pray_v for_o pauli_n leo_fw-la serm_n 2._o the_o âat_a petri_n &_o pauli_n that_o he_o be_v once_o convert_v may_v strenhgten_v his_o brother_n and_o when_o word_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n be_v send_v to_o all_o the_o disciple_n for_o so_o much_o as_o peter_n both_o enter_v first_o into_o the_o sepulchre_n 24._o luc._n 24._o and_o be_v not_o comprehend_v with_o the_o rest_n but_o be_v severallie_o name_v by_o himself_o 16._o marci_n 16._o while_o the_o angel_n say_v tell_v his_o disciple_n and_o peter_n lucae_n in_o 24._o ca._n lucae_n that_o he_o will_v go_v before_o you_o into_o galilee_n and_o as_o s._n ambrose_n thinck_v of_o man_n he_o be_v the_o first_o who_o see_v christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n abeit_v some_o woman_n have_v see_v he_o before_o and_o whereas_o the_o other_o apostle_n sail_v in_o the_o sea_n within_o the_o cumpasse_n of_o a_o boat_n 2._o joan._n 21._o bernard_n de_fw-fr consid_fw-la lib._n 2._o yet_o s._n peter_n alone_o walk_v upon_o the_o whole_a sea_n without_o any_o particular_a boat_n betoken_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o sea_n be_v ordinary_o subject_a unto_o his_o jurisdiction_n farthermore_o for_o so_o much_o as_o some_o
peter_n shall_v rule_v any_o one_o piece_n of_o the_o militant_a flock_n and_o s._n james_n a_o other_o and_o s._n john_n the_o three_o but_o rather_o by_o his_o appointment_n s._n peter_n may_v rule_v the_o self_n same_o flock_n which_o s._n john_n or_o s._n paul_n or_o s._n james_n might_n and_o contrariwise_o they_o may_v rule_v the_o same_o flock_n which_o s._n peter_n do_v for_o all_o be_v send_v aequallie_o into_o the_o whole_a world_n 28_o matth._n 28_o therefore_o except_o beside_o this_o common_a commend_v of_o the_o flock_n indifferent_o to_o all_o s._n peter_n alone_o have_v be_v make_v the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a flock_n as_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v and_o that_o not_o only_o as_o a_o apostle_n 21._o joan._n 21._o but_o as_o a_o bisshoppe_n and_o as_o one_o ordinary_a officer_n the_o like_a whereof_o shall_v for_o ever_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n we_o may_v bold_o say_v that_o the_o example_n of_o have_v any_o one_o ordinary_a curate_n bishop_z or_o metropolitan_a in_o any_o one_o parrissh_a or_o diocese_n or_o province_n be_v utter_o without_o any_o example_n of_o christ_n institution_n in_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o that_o equal_a institution_n of_o many_o pastor_n over_o onâ_n flock_v only_o stand_v which_o thing_n the_o protestant_n do_v maintain_v it_o shall_v invincible_o follow_v that_o see_v no_o devise_n of_o man_n be_v able_a to_o control_v the_o institution_n oâ_n christ_n it_o be_v at_o this_o day_n much_o better_a to_o have_v twelve_o or_o thirten_a curate_n in_o one_o parish_n and_o so_o many_o bishop_n in_o one_o diocese_n then_o to_o have_v one_o alone_a for_o christ_n if_o peter_n alone_o be_v not_o above_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o chief_a pastoral_a dignity_n make_v thirteen_o apostle_n to_o be_v equal_a pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o self_n same_o flock_n 2d_o math._n 18._o &_o 2d_o and_o that_o foorm_n of_o government_n which_o christ_n ordain_v ought_v still_o to_o continue_v in_o every_o particular_a church_n for_o who_o dare_v change_v our_o lord_n institution_n titum_fw-la cypri_n lib._n 1._o epi._n 3._o &_o li._n 4._o epi._n 2_o hieron_n in_o 1._o c._n epist_n ad_fw-la titum_fw-la but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o all_o the_o world_n confess_v that_o now_o in_o one_o church_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v at_o one_o time_n but_o one_o bishop_n or_o one_o pastor_n in_o so_o much_o that_o s._n hierom_n say_v in_o una_fw-la civitate_fw-la plures_fw-la ut_fw-la nun_n cupantur_fw-la episcopi_n esse_fw-la non_fw-la poterant_fw-la in_o one_o city_n there_o can_v not_o be_v many_o bishop_n according_a as_o a_o bishop_n be_v now_o take_v to_o signify_v one_o that_o be_v above_o common_a priest_n if_o whereas_o once_o many_o priest_n according_a to_o s._n hieroms_n mind_n rule_v one_o church_n for_o a_o time_n equal_o evelletentur_fw-la in._n 1._o epist_n ad_fw-la titum_fw-la ut_fw-la dissensicnun_fw-la plantaria_fw-la evelletentur_fw-la yet_o for_o the_o better_a avoid_v of_o schism_n that_o government_n be_v change_v and_o one_o bishop_n be_v set_v over_o they_o all_o see_v s._n hierom_n allow_v well_o the_o change_n as_o be_v make_v for_o the_o better_a and_o yet_o it_o can_v not_o have_v be_v for_o the_o better_a if_o it_o have_v whole_o lack_v a_o foorm_n and_o pattern_n in_o that_o government_n which_o christ_n himself_o appoint_v to_o the_o church_n see_v the_o same_o s._n hierom_n say_v jovianum_fw-la lib._n 1._o adversus_fw-la jovianum_fw-la that_o among_o twelve_o one_o be_v choose_v and_o that_o by_o the_o good_a master_n christ_n to_o send_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o all_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v well_o weigh_v and_o confer_v together_o i_o may_v most_o certain_o conclude_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o institute_v s._n peter_n to_o be_v as_o one_o chief_a pastor_n in_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n according_a to_o s._n hieroms_n express_a meaning_n but_o that_o also_o he_o do_v institute_v he_o alone_o as_o a_o ordinary_a officer_n according_a to_o who_o unity_n every_o other_o church_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o length_n rule_v by_o one_o curate_n or_o bishop_n for_o as_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n govern_v the_o flock_n for_o a_o time_n together_o with_o s._n peter_n extraordinary_o dividitur_fw-la aequaliter_fw-la inter_fw-la piure_v ecclesiae_fw-la cura_fw-la dividitur_fw-la and_o s._n peter_n alone_o govern_v the_o whole_a flock_n ordinary_o so_o while_o the_o apostle_n yet_o live_v some_o few_o parish_n be_v govern_v extraordinary_o by_o many_o pastor_n at_o once_o as_z s._n hierom_n think_v but_o as_o we_o see_v most_o clere_o that_o the_o equal_a government_n of_o many_o pastor_n in_o any_o one_o parish_n or_o diocese_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n long_o before_o s._n hieroms_n time_n be_v whole_o expire_v so_o we_o may_v as_o evident_o perceive_v if_o we_o be_v not_o give_v over_o to_o a_o blind_a hart_n that_o the_o extraordinary_a government_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n or_o of_o any_o other_o prelate_n with_o equal_a power_n be_v fiften_v hundred_o year_n pass_v expire_v and_o that_o now_o the_o only_a ordinary_a mean_a to_o govern_v god_n church_n as_o well_o in_o the_o whole_a as_o in_o the_o part_n be_v to_o have_v one_o pastor_n alone_o in_o every_o parish_n and_o one_o chief_a pastor_n alone_o over_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n the_o which_o one_o chief_a pastor_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o now_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v by_o god_n grace_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o one_o ordinary_a pastor_n who_o succede_v in_o s._n peter_n chair_n and_o be_v above_o all_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o god_n word_n the_o xv._o chap._n as_o sina_n be_v a_o mountain_n in_o in_o arabia_n 4._o galat._n 4._o be_v say_v of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v join_v or_o to_o be_v nigh_o unto_o the_o earthly_a city_n of_o jerusalem_n not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o nighness_n or_o affinity_n of_o the_o place_n as_o for_o the_o likeness_n of_o condition_n because_o the_o self_n same_o law_n of_o moses_n which_o have_v be_v give_v in_o sina_n be_v afterward_o continue_v and_o preserve_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o as_o by_o that_o mean_a the_o jew_n who_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n first_o receive_v be_v not_o bind_v to_o jerusalem_n at_o all_o as_o the_o which_o be_v then_o full_a of_o idolatry_n be_v afterward_o bind_v to_o come_v thither_o thrice_o every_o year_n 23._o exod._n 23._o because_o the_o high_a priesthood_n and_o temple_n be_v settle_v there_o 17._o deut._n 17._o as_o in_o the_o place_n which_o god_n choose_v even_o so_o fare_v it_o between_o the_o chief_a power_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o church_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 21._o joan._n 21._o for_o albeit_o when_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o peter_n and_o when_o he_o be_v make_v chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o same_o he_o be_v in_o palestina_n and_o not_o in_o rome_n and_o for_o that_o time_n be_v rather_o account_v the_o high_a bishop_n of_o the_o circuncision_n 2._o galat._n 2._o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o faithful_a jew_n then_o of_o the_o gentile_n who_o be_v not_o then_o convert_v from_o their_o idolatry_n yet_o for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o same_o s._n peter_n who_o primacy_n be_v plentiful_o set_v forth_o in_o god_n word_n at_o the_o length_n settle_v himself_o at_o rome_n by_o god_n appointment_n prescript_n iren._n lib._n 3_o cap._n 3._o tertul._n de_fw-fr prescript_n and_o leave_v a_o successor_n there_o for_o this_o respect_n i_o may_v well_o affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n primacy_n be_v commend_v and_o warrant_v by_o god_n own_o word_n and_o see_v it_o have_v be_v already_o declare_v that_o s._n peter_n alone_o according_a to_o the_o first_o literal_a sense_n be_v both_o the_o rock_n 16_o matth._n 16_o whereupon_o christ_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n and_o also_o the_o pastor_n 21._o joan._n 21._o who_o as_o he_o love_v christ_n more_o than_o other_o so_o he_o have_v authority_n to_o feed_v christ_n flock_n more_o than_o any_o other_o bishop_n item_n that_o the_o power_n of_o peter_n be_v ordinary_a and_o must_v continue_v still_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n item_n that_o it_o must_v continue_v in_o one_o chief_a shepherd_n only_o now_o if_o i_o show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o one_o ordinary_a chief_a shepherd_n who_o succede_v in_o the_o say_a authority_n of_o saint_n peter_n how_o can_v it_o be_v avoid_v but_o that_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v avouch_v and_o teach_v by_o god_n own_o word_n 14._o egesippus_fw-la lib._n 3_o c._n 2._o iren._n lib._n 3_o cap._n 3._o euseb_n histor_n lib._n 2._o c._n 14._o first_o not_o only_o all_o the_o history_n all_o holy_a writer_n and_o the_o general_a tradition_n of_o all_o age_n have_v testify_v
cyprian_n confess_v the_o chair_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o be_v at_o rome_n for_o whereas_o certain_a factiouse_a heretic_n sail_v from_o carthage_n to_o rome_n as_o intend_v to_o complain_v upon_o s._n cyprian_a and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o pope_n cornelius_n s._n cyprian_n write_v thus_o of_o that_o matter_n audent_fw-la ad_fw-la petri_n cathedram_fw-la atque_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la 3._o li._n 1._o epi._n 3._o unde_fw-la unitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la à _fw-la schismaticis_fw-la &_o prophanis_fw-la literas_fw-la far_o nec_fw-la cogitare_fw-la eos_fw-la esse_fw-la romanos_fw-la quorum_fw-la fides_fw-la apostolo_n praedicante_fw-la laudata_fw-la est_fw-la 1._o rom._n 1._o ad_fw-la quos_fw-la perfidia_fw-la habere_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la accessum_fw-la they_o dare_v carry_v letter_n from_o scismatical_a and_o profane_a man_n to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n church_n principal_a church_n and_o principal_a church_n whence_o the_o priestly_a unity_n begin_v neither_o do_v they_o consider_v they_o to_o be_v roman_n who_o faith_n be_v praise_v by_o the_o report_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o who_o infidelity_n can_v not_o have_v access_n in_o this_o sentence_n all_o the_o privilege_n of_o s._n peter_n supremacy_n be_v acknowlege_v to_o be_v at_o rome_n first_o there_o be_v s._n peter_n chair_n to_o wit_n his_o ordinary_a power_n of_o teach_v and_o of_o judge_v ecclesiastical_a matter_n again_o there_o be_v the_o principal_a church_n or_o flock_n of_o christian_n very_o because_o they_o be_v govern_v by_o cornelius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o succede_v in_o the_o pastoral_a office_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o otherwise_o jerusalem_n may_v have_v seem_v the_o mother_n church_n to_o all_o christian_n be_v it_o not_o that_o s._n peter_n commit_v jerusalem_fw-la to_o the_o government_n of_o s._n james_n carry_v his_o own_o authority_n with_o he_o and_o leave_v it_o all_o at_o rome_n three_o how_o be_v it_o say_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o priest_n or_o of_o bishop_n for_o sacerdos_fw-la contain_v both_o dignity_n begin_v at_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o because_o it_o have_v the_o whole_a pastoral_a authority_n of_o peter_n in_o who_o the_o beginning_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a peminence_n be_v 16_o joan._n 1._o matth._n 16_o because_o he_o first_o be_v êmise_v to_o be_v call_v peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o rock_n and_o to_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n give_fw-ge to_o hin_n but_o take_v away_o s._n peter_n prerogative_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o beginning_n of_o priesthood_n but_o rather_o jerusalem_n or_o antioch_n four_o this_o word_n unity_n do_v import_v that_o as_o peter_n alone_o have_v in_o he_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n in_o earth_n which_o can_v be_v but_o one_o so_o cornelius_n the_o successor_n of_o peter_n have_v in_o he_o the_o same_o power_n and_o so_o unity_n continue_v still_o in_o the_o succession_n of_o peter_n not_o every_o unity_n but_o priestly_a unity_n because_o he_o sit_v in_o rome_n by_o who_o and_o in_o who_o all_o priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v one_o while_o they_o all_o concern_v their_o government_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v oversee_v be_v confirm_v and_o feed_v of_o he_o who_o be_v without_o fellow_n in_o his_o supremacy_n farthermore_o when_o s._n cyprian_n say_v infidelity_n can_v have_v no_o access_n to_o the_o roman_n what_o other_o thing_n be_v that_o then_o to_o say_v 22_o lucae_n 22_o that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o rule_v for_o who_o faith_n christ_n pray_v for_o what_o flock_n can_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v always_o safe_a from_o infidelity_n except_o it_o be_v warrant_v by_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a safeguard_n of_o his_o church_n add_v hereunto_o that_o the_o same_o s._n cyprian_n call_v rome_n ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la matricem_fw-la &_o radicem_fw-la 8._o lib._n 4._o epist_n 8._o the_o mother_n and_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n very_o because_o thence_o all_o bishoply_n authority_n of_o feed_v christ_n flock_n do_v spring_n first_o and_o be_v continual_o nourish_v and_o maintain_v do_v not_o s._n cyprian_n confess_v cornelius_n to_o have_v receive_v the_o appellation_n of_o basilides_n lawful_o out_o of_o spain_n 4_o lib._n 1._o ep_v 4_o albeit_o he_o show_v also_o that_o basilides_n for_o his_o part_n do_v unjust_o appeal_v and_o do_v deceive_v the_o pope_n by_o false_a suggestion_n and_o evil_a report_n last_o of_o all_o s._n cyprian_n require_v stephanus_n the_o pope_n 13_o lib._n 3._o ep_v 13_o to_o depose_v marcianus_n the_o bishop_n of_o arles_n in_o france_n which_o sure_o to_o do_v in_o a_o other_o province_n be_v a_o sign_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v above_o other_o bishop_n thus_o do_v that_o holy_a martyr_n defend_v both_o the_o right_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o thing_n be_v the_o more_o notable_a in_o s._n cyprian_n stephani_fw-la cyprianus_n contra_fw-la epist_n stephani_fw-la because_o he_o otherwise_o dissent_v from_o the_o opinion_n of_o pope_n stephanus_n concern_v the_o baptise_v of_o such_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o have_v be_v baptize_v before_o of_o the_o heretic_n do_v not_o yet_o for_o the_o greedy_a defence_n of_o his_o own_o opinion_n deny_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o therein_o show_v that_o not_o withstand_v his_o private_a error_n he_o keep_v still_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n in_o acknowlege_v the_o visible_a head_n thereof_o novatus_fw-la teach_v false_o that_o those_o who_o have_v once_o deny_v christ_n or_o have_v commit_v great_a and_o mortal_a sin_n may_v not_o be_v admit_v afterward_o by_o christian_a priest_n or_o bishop_n to_o do_v penance_n nor_o to_o their_o old_a state_n of_o grace_n with_o which_o heresy_n a_o christian_a priest_n who_o be_v name_v hippolytus_n hippolytus_n hippolytus_n because_o he_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n with_o wild_a horse_n be_v for_o the_o time_n deceive_v but_o for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o say_v hippolytus_n do_v otherwise_o love_n christ_n so_o hearty_o that_o he_o be_v content_a to_o die_v for_o his_o name_n that_o the_o say_a death_n may_v not_o be_v unprofitable_a to_o he_o god_n of_o his_o great_a mercy_n reveal_v to_o he_o the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n before_o his_o death_n the_o which_o true_a faith_n he_o do_v not_o keep_v to_o himself_o but_o as_o well_o for_o the_o recompense_n of_o his_o own_o evil_a example_n which_o he_o have_v give_v while_o he_o follow_v that_o heresy_n as_o also_o for_o the_o instruction_n of_o other_o he_o have_v grace_n to_o confess_v the_o same_o for_o when_o he_o be_v now_o leaden_a to_o the_o place_n of_o his_o martyrdom_n the_o christian_a people_n come_v about_o he_o and_o ask_v which_o be_v the_o better_a religion_n whether_o the_o catholic_a or_o else_o that_o of_o novatus_fw-la to_o who_o he_o answer_v thus_o as_o prudentius_n do_v recite_v hippoliti_fw-la periste_n phanon_fw-mi in_o passione_n hippoliti_fw-la respondit_fw-la fugite_fw-la o_fw-la miseri_fw-la execranda_fw-la novati_fw-la schismata_fw-la catholicis_fw-la reddite_fw-la vos_fw-la populis_fw-la una_fw-la fides_fw-la vigeat_fw-la prisco_fw-la quae_fw-la condita_fw-la templo_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la paulus_n retinet_fw-la quamque_fw-la cathedra_fw-la petri_n his_o answer_n be_v o_o flee_v the_o schism_n of_o curse_a novat_n lore_n and_o to_o the_o cath'like_a folk_n and_o flock_n yourselves_o again_o restore_v let_v only_o one_o faith_n rule_n and_o rain_n keep_v in_o the_o church_n of_o old_a which_o faith_n both_o paul_n do_v still_o retain_v and_o peter_n chair_n do_v hold_v mark_v these_o degree_n avoid_v schism_n and_o division_n before_o the_o time_n of_o novatus_fw-la there_o be_v but_o one_o faith_n after_o he_o there_o begin_v to_o be_v two_o faith_n he_z then_o divide_v the_o former_a faith_n avoid_v you_o the_o division_n and_o restore_v your_o self_n to_o the_o catholic_a peple_n which_o be_v spread_v every_o where_o before_o novatus_fw-la be_v bear_v let_v one_o faith_n prevail_v which_o one_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n which_o be_v that_o the_o which_o paul_n and_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n keep_v what_o be_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o sit_v in_o that_o chair_n so_o that_o he_o go_v from_o schism_n to_o the_o catholic_n and_o he_o show_v where_o the_o catholic_n be_v by_o one_o faith_n without_o division_n that_o one_o faith_n be_v see_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v we_o not_o now_o say_v according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o hippolytus_n to_o our_o country_n man_n avoid_v the_o schism_n may_v we_o not_o say_v restore_v yourselves_o to_o the_o catholic_a people_n follow_v not_o the_o two_o faith_n which_o be_v now_o stir_v but_o let_v that_o one_o faith_n prevail_v which_o be_v
deliver_v a_o certain_a religion_n to_o the_o roman_n as_o well_o concern_v the_o trinity_n as_o other_o thing_n second_o that_o the_o say_a religion_n come_v from_o s._n peter_n be_v keep_v still_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n three_o that_o it_o be_v keep_v special_o by_o the_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n for_o which_o cause_n damasus_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v name_v in_o the_o law_n after_o damasus_n a_o bless_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n call_v peter_n be_v also_o name_v not_o with_o the_o intent_n to_o show_v also_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n keep_v always_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o at_o that_o moment_n lucius_n a_o rage_a wolf_n occupy_v the_o seat_n in_o alexandria_n but_o because_o this_o peter_n of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v now_o name_v be_v in_o deed_n the_o true_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n albeit_o he_o be_v now_o keep_v out_o of_o his_o church_n by_o violence_n 26_o nicep_v lib._n 11._o cap._n 26_o whereas_o then_o there_o be_v two_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n one_o who_o agree_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o other_o who_o disagree_v âª_o because_o the_o say_v peter_n do_v agree_v with_o damasus_n and_o flee_v out_o of_o prison_n to_o he_o he_o be_v name_v with_o damasus_n and_o thereby_o the_o other_o bishop_n be_v insinuate_v to_o be_v a_o usurper_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a force_n of_o the_o decree_n rest_v upon_o the_o tradition_n and_o succession_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o rome_n and_o of_o those_o who_o agree_v with_o he_o if_o peter_n of_o alexandria_n have_v not_o follow_v that_o succession_n of_o s._n peter_n he_o have_v no_o more_o be_v esteem_v than_o lucius_n georgius_n gregorius_n or_o dioscorus_n 97._o an._n do._n 4â4_n tom._n 1._o council_n &_o distinct_a 97._o who_o be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n wree_v all_o heretic_n pope_n bonifacius_n the_o first_o write_v to_o the_o christian_a emperor_n honorius_n in_o this_o wise_a mihi_fw-la deus_fw-la noster_fw-la meum_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la vobis_fw-la res_fw-la humanas_fw-la regentibus_fw-la deputavit_fw-la our_o god_n have_v appoint_v mie_a priesthood_n to_o i_o whereas_o you_o do_v govern_v woordlie_a matter_n and_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o require_v the_o emperor_n help_n not_o i_o warrant_v you_o for_o the_o dispose_n of_o his_o own_o priesthood_n but_o for_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o emperor_n promise_v his_o help_n confess_v that_o he_o receive_v the_o writing_n of_o his_o blessedness_n with_o dew_n gratulation_n of_o reverence_n tuus_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la tuus_fw-la desire_v his_o apostoleshippe_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o safeguard_n of_o his_o empire_n honorius_n faith_n then_o be_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v head_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o ecclesiastical_a peace_n and_o not_o supreme_a head_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n and_o cause_n to_o defend_v i_o say_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n make_v by_o bishop_n and_o not_o to_o make_v new_a ecclesiastical_a law_n whereunto_o to_o bishop_n shall_v be_v subject_a against_o their_o will_n 450._o an._n dom._n 450._o let_v we_o add_v hereunto_o that_o which_o a_o empress_n also_o write_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n for_o we_o may_v well_o believe_v that_o she_o write_v according_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o church_n in_o her_o tyme._n chalcedonens_fw-la in_o epistol_n gallae_fw-la placidiae_fw-la ante_fw-la synodum_fw-la chalcedonens_fw-la thus_o then_o galla_n placidia_n say_v concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o apostolica_fw-la sede_fw-la primus_fw-la ille_fw-la ê_n coelestes_fw-la clave_n dignus_fw-la fuit_fw-la accipere_fw-la principatum_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la ordinavit_fw-la he_o that_o be_v worthy_a to_o receive_v first_o the_o heavenly_a key_n that_o be_v s._n peter_n have_v ordain_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishoply_n office_n in_o the_o apostolic_a see_n if_o this_o be_v so_o peter_n be_v not_o only_a first_o and_o prince_n himself_o but_o he_o also_o ordain_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a of_o bishop_n after_o he_o etc._n ad_fw-la synodun_fw-la chalcedo_n domino_fw-la meo_fw-la theodosio_n etc._n etc._n when_o i_o say_v peter_z ordain_v it_o i_o mean_v that_o christ_n by_o peter_n ordain_v it_o valentinian_n be_v of_o the_o same_o belefe_v and_o judgement_n say_v fidem_fw-la à _fw-la nostris_fw-la majoribus_fw-la traditam_fw-la debemus_fw-la cum_fw-la omni_fw-la competenti_fw-la devotione_fw-la defendere_fw-la &_o dignitatem_fw-la propriae_fw-la venerationis_fw-la b._n apostolo_n petro_n intemeratam_fw-la &_o in_fw-la nostris_fw-la temporibus_fw-la conseruare_fw-la quatenus_fw-la beatissimê°_n romanae_fw-la civitatis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la cvi_fw-la principatum_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la super_fw-la omnes_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la contulit_fw-la locum_fw-la habeat_fw-la ac_fw-la facultatem_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o sacerdotibus_fw-la iudicare_fw-la we_o ought_v to_o defend_v with_o all_o competent_a devotion_n the_o faith_n deliver_v from_o our_o elder_n and_o to_o conserve_v and_o keep_v in_o our_o time_n to_o the_o bless_a apostle_n s._n peter_n the_o dignity_n of_o his_o proper_a and_o own_o worship_n uncontrolled_a so_o that_o the_o most_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o antiquity_n have_v give_v above_o all_o i_o the_o cheefty_a of_o priesthood_n may_v have_v place_n and_o power_n to_o judge_v of_o faith_n and_o of_o priest_n lo_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v give_v to_o saint_n peter_n very_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sit_v in_o his_o chair_n and_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v despise_v the_o worship_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v stain_v if_o the_o old_a time_n give_v the_o primacy_n of_o priestod_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o s._n peter_n sake_n and_o that_o super_fw-la omnes_fw-la over_o all_o man_n if_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n ago_o it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v that_o antiquity_n give_v the_o chiefty_a of_o priestly_a power_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o they_o new_a teacher_n who_o after_o fiften_v hundred_o year_n go_v about_o to_o pluck_v the_o primacy_n of_o priesthood_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n episcopi_n an._n dom._n 4.57_o act._n 3._o in_o council_n chalceâo_o autoritate_fw-la ro._n episcopi_n martianus_n likewise_o with_o valentinian_n confess_v of_o the_o general_n council_n which_o come_v together_o at_o chalcedon_n in_o ââââwise_o quae_fw-la synodus_fw-la dum_fw-la fidem_fw-la diligenter_n inquirit_fw-la authoritate_fw-la beatissimi_fw-la leonis_fw-la episcopi_n aeternae_fw-la vrbis_fw-la romae_fw-la &_o religionis_fw-la fundamenta_fw-la constituit_fw-la sanctae_fw-la civitati_fw-la &_o flaviano_fw-it palmam_fw-la mortis_fw-la tribuit_fw-la gloriosae_fw-la the_o which_o council_n while_o it_o make_v diligent_a inquisition_n concern_v the_o faith_n it_o both_o appoint_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o holy_a city_n the_o church_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o most_o bless_a leo_n bishop_n of_o the_o everlasting_a city_n of_o rome_n leo._n by_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n leo._n and_o also_o give_v to_o flavianus_n the_o crown_n of_o a_o gloriouse_a death_n all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o why_o by_o his_o authority_n the_o same_o martianus_n give_v the_o cause_n thereof_o before_o in_o a_o oration_n which_o he_o make_v in_o the_o four_o general_a council_n 740._o act._n 1._o fol._n 740._o where_o he_o say_v of_o leo_n the_o pope_n qui_fw-la apostolicum_fw-la gubernat_fw-la thronum_fw-la who_o govern_v the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v he_o mean_v only_o the_o apostolic_a see_v of_o s._n peter_n trinit_fw-la an._n d._n 534_o in_o codicadâ_n summa_fw-la trinit_fw-la for_o the_o honour_n of_o that_o see_v justinian_n write_v thus_o to_o john_n the_o second_o pope_n of_o rome_n nos_fw-la reddentes_fw-la honorem_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la sedi_fw-la &_o vestrae_fw-la sanctitati_fw-la qdsemê_n nobis_fw-la in_o voto_fw-la fuit_fw-la &_o est_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la decet_fw-la patrem_fw-la honorantes_fw-la vestram_fw-la beati_fw-la tudinem_fw-la oina_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la statum_fw-la pertinent_a festinavimus_fw-la ad_fw-la notitiam_fw-la defer_v vestrae_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la we_o render_v honour_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o to_o your_o holiness_n the_o which_o thing_n ever_o be_v and_o be_v our_o desire_n and_o we_o honour_v your_o blessedness_n as_o it_o become_v we_o to_o honour_v our_o father_n have_v hasten_v to_o bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o your_o holiness_n all_o thing_n which_o do_v appertein_a to_o the_o state_n of_o church_n if_o the_o pope_n be_v as_o a_o father_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o be_v so_o to_o be_v honour_v it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a for_o the_o emperor_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o son_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n or_o governor_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n of_o his_o spiritual_a father_n again_o he_o say_v nec_fw-la enim_fw-la patimur_fw-la quicquam_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiarun_n statum_fw-la pertinet_fw-la quamuis_fw-la manifestum_fw-la &_o indubitatum_fw-la sit_fw-la quod_fw-la movetur_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la
eunden_fw-mi statim_fw-la verum_fw-la christi_fw-la vicarium_fw-la esse_fw-la omnes_fw-la crederent_fw-la that_o from_o thence_o forward_o who_o the_o clergy_n people_n and_o the_o roman_a army_n shall_v choose_v to_o be_v bishop_n all_o man_n shall_v straight_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a vicar_n of_o christ_n christ_n the_o true_a vicaren_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v not_o the_o vicar_n of_o phocas_n or_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o the_o emperor_n but_o the_o vicar_n and_o lieutenant_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v then_o the_o public_a faith_n not_o only_o in_o the_o latin_a but_o also_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n that_o who_o so_o be_v due_o choose_v bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v christ_n own_o vicar_n 749._o an._n dom._n 749._o if_o the_o whole_a nobility_n and_o people_n of_o france_n have_v not_o beleve_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v of_o such_o authority_n for_o what_o purpose_n will_v they_o have_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o know_v the_o mind_n of_o pope_n zacharias_n who_o shall_v be_v king_n of_o france_n whether_o chilpericus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la paenè_fw-la nullius_fw-la potestatis_fw-la who_o have_v the_o bare_a name_n thereof_o without_o exercise_v any_o kingly_a power_n in_o manner_n or_o the_o great_a stuard_n domus_fw-la maior_fw-la domus_fw-la who_o exercise_v the_o public_a office_n and_o power_n of_o the_o king_n without_o the_o name_n chron._n in_o chron._n the_o pope_n answer_v as_o ado_n testify_v regem_fw-la potius_fw-la illum_fw-la debere_fw-la vocari_fw-la qui_fw-la rempublicam_fw-la regeret_fw-la that_o he_o rather_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o king_n who_o rule_v the_o common_a weal._n upon_o which_o answer_n pipinus_fw-la be_v anoint_v king_n autoritate_fw-la apostolica_fw-la &_o fran_n corum_fw-la electione_n say_v sigebertus_n by_o the_o apostolic_a authority_n 750._o in_o chron._n an._n dom._n 750._o and_o by_o the_o election_n of_o the_o french_a man_n neither_o may_v this_o so_o great_a credit_n which_o the_o whole_a people_n and_o nobility_n of_o france_n repose_v in_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v right_o impute_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o phocas_n who_o before_o that_o have_v declare_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n to_o be_v head_n of_o all_o church_n for_o even_o after_o this_o election_n of_o king_n pipinus_fw-la the_o first_o emperor_n of_o the_o french_a man_n or_o rather_o of_o the_o german_n for_o the_o french_a man_n come_v out_o of_o germany_n carolus_n magnus_n protest_v his_o reverence_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a show_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o honour_v it_o to_o be_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o not_o the_o judgement_n of_o phocas_n his_o word_n be_v these_o in_o memoriam_fw-la beati_fw-la petri_n apostoli_fw-la honoremus_fw-la sanctam_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o apostolican_n sedem_fw-la distinct_a an._n dom._n 806._o 19_o distinct_a ut_fw-la quae_fw-la nobis_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la mater_fw-la est_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la esse_fw-la debeat_fw-la magistra_fw-la rationis_fw-la quare_fw-la seruanda_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la mansuetudine_fw-la humilitas_fw-la et_fw-la licet_fw-la vix_fw-la ferendum_fw-la ab_fw-la illa_fw-la sancta_fw-la sede_fw-la imponatur_fw-la iugum_fw-la tamen_fw-la feramê°_n &_o pia_fw-la devotione_fw-la toleremus_fw-la let_v we_o honour_v the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o see_v apostolic_a for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o bless_a peter_n the_o apostle_n worship_n the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o priestly_a worship_n that_o as_o the_o same_o see_v be_v to_o we_o the_o mother_n of_o priestly_a dignity_n so_o it_o may_v be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a trade_n wherefore_o humility_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v with_o meekness_n and_o although_o a_o yoke_n be_v put_v upon_o we_o from_o the_o same_o holy_a see_v which_o be_v scant_o to_o be_v bear_v yet_o let_v we_o bear_v and_o suffer_v it_o with_o godly_a devotion_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o carolus_n honour_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n not_o for_o phocas_n but_o for_o s._n peter_n sake_n ludovicus_n who_o for_o his_o singular_a virtue_n and_o godliness_n be_v surname_v pius_n have_v be_v triatorouslie_o order_v by_o adalgisus_fw-la the_o duke_n of_o beneventum_n 872._o regino_n in_o chron._n an._n 872._o who_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v he_o in_o his_o palace_n and_o be_v afterward_o force_v to_o swear_v that_o he_o will_v not_o revenge_v that_o injury_n be_v so_o far_o from_o take_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o rather_o he_o be_v content_a to_o take_v absolution_n from_o his_o oath_n of_o john_n the_o pope_n authoritate_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o sancti_fw-la petri_n by_o the_o authority_n not_o of_o phocas_n but_o of_o god_n and_o of_o saint_n peter_n i_o will_v go_v forward_o to_o show_v at_o large_a the_o obedience_n of_o all_o good_a emperor_n and_o king_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a even_o till_o this_o day_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v account_v a_o superfluous_a labour_n since_o as_o i_o suppose_v no_o man_n do_v doubt_n of_o it_o and_o very_o concern_v our_o own_o country_n as_o above_o fourtene_n hundred_o year_n past_a 188_o an._n d._n 188_o lucius_n the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o the_o britan_n do_v send_v to_o eleutherius_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o receive_v from_o thence_o by_o his_o authority_n the_o ordinary_a mean_a of_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n for_o he_o and_o his_o realm_n even_o so_o ethelbert_n the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o the_o english_a saxon_n take_v his_o faith_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n s._n gregory_n be_v they_o pope_n by_o our_o apostle_n s._n augustine_n 630_o an._n d._n 630_o and_o the_o good_a king_n osui_n of_o northumberlund_n 29_o bedae_fw-la lib._n histo_fw-la angli_fw-la 3._o c._n 29_o and_o ecbert_n the_o king_n of_o kent_n understand_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n esset_fw-la catholica_fw-la &_o apostolica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la be_v the_o catholic_a and_o the_o apostolic_a church_n send_v wichardus_fw-la with_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a of_o england_n to_o rome_n that_o have_v there_o take_v the_o degré_fw-fr of_o a_o archbishop_n he_o may_v ordain_v bishop_n to_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n through_o britanny_n from_o that_o day_n forward_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o all_o our_o chronicle_n which_o at_o the_o least_o be_v make_v before_o that_o schism_n and_o heresy_n begin_v that_o as_o every_o king_n not_o only_o of_o england_n but_o of_o all_o christian_a country_n be_v best_a and_o most_o give_fw-ge to_o godliness_n and_o to_o virtue_n so_o be_v he_o most_o obedient_a and_o frindful_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o contrariwise_o as_o every_o of_o they_o be_v most_o licentious_a most_o give_v to_o extorsion_n to_o tyranny_n or_o to_o roble_v of_o church_n so_o be_v he_o most_o disobedient_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n so_o that_o as_o all_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n from_o nero_n to_o the_o renegat_n julianus_n do_v always_o persecute_v the_o apostolic_a see_v of_o rome_n and_o as_o afterward_o all_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n do_v the_o same_o as_o well_o those_o of_o constantinople_n as_o of_o the_o west_n so_o contrariwise_o all_o the_o good_a constantine_n the_o theodosians_n the_o martian_n carolus_n ludovicus_n otho_n and_o their_o good_a successor_n do_v so_o little_o think_v themselves_o the_o supreme_a head_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o other_o christian_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n that_o contrary_a wise_a they_o obey_v they_o as_o their_o chief_a pastor_n and_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o be_v a_o part_n every_o man_n in_o his_o own_o realm_n but_o also_o when_o that_o most_o famous_a battle_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n be_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n begin_v at_o one_o time_n by_o the_o spaniard_n 1096._o sigebertus_n in_o chron._n anno_fw-la do._n 1096._o gascon_n britan_n norman_n english_a scotish_n and_o frenchman_n by_o the_o burgundions_a almain_n lumbards_n and_o italian_n when_o diverse_a duke_n as_o godfrid_n of_o lorraine_n and_o baiamund_n of_o apulia_n when_o diverse_a earl_n as_o baldwin_n of_o mons_n one_o robert_n of_o flanders_n and_o a_o other_o of_o normandy_n stephen_n of_o blese_n and_o raimund_n when_o hugh_n the_o brother_n of_o philip_n the_o king_n of_o france_n take_v that_o most_o holy_a warfare_n in_o hand_n when_o i_o say_v they_o be_v stir_v uppe_o with_o one_o spirit_n and_o hart_n to_o recover_v the_o holy_a land_n do_v not_o they_o show_v as_o well_o their_o own_o belief_n as_o the_o universal_a faith_n of_o all_o their_o country_n and_o nation_n in_o that_o they_o have_v hamarus_n the_o bishop_n of_o podium_fw-la set_v over_o they_o apostolica_fw-la authoritate_fw-la by_o the_o apostolic_a authority_n and_o how_o marueilouse_a success_n of_o victory_n have_v they_o conquer_a as_o well_o antioch_n as_o jerusalem_n it_o can_v be_v unknowen_a to_o no_o man_n who_o read_v
the_o old_a history_n what_o prosperity_n these_o realm_n have_v always_o have_v which_o keep_v themselves_o in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n keep_v also_o the_o faith_n which_o that_o church_n profess_v in_o so_o much_o that_o africa_n be_v invincible_a until_o the_o donatists_n and_o the_o pelagians_n have_v withdraw_v the_o obedience_n thereof_o from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n neither_o be_v the_o turk_n able_a to_o conquer_v the_o grecian_n either_o of_o asia_n or_o of_o thracia_n until_o after_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n against_o their_o consent_n there_o give_fw-ge they_o have_v again_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o pope_n i_o will_v come_v never_o home_o the_o english_a saxon_n conquer_v the_o briton_n for_o no_o cause_n rather_o then_o because_o the_o briton_n begin_v to_o forsake_v the_o old_a faith_n wherein_o fugatius_n damianus_n and_o germanus_n all_o come_n as_o legate_n and_o preacher_n from_o the_o pope_n have_v instruct_v they_o 2._o beda_n hist_o anglor_n li._n 2._o cap._n 2._o for_o as_o s._n bede_n testify_v the_o briton_n now_o have_v leave_v the_o keep_v and_o profession_n of_o easter_n after_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o who_o the_o catholic_a church_n agree_v therein_o and_o begin_v to_o keep_v it_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v yea_o also_o they_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n otherwise_o then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v if_o then_o we_o continue_v again_o in_o this_o division_n and_o schism_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o have_v to_o fear_v the_o like_a spoil_n and_o conquest_n or_o some_o worse_a and_o even_o of_o temporal_a calamity_n beside_o the_o everlasting_a damnation_n of_o those_o who_o die_v without_o the_o society_n of_o s._n peter_n see_v who_o be_v make_v of_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o successor_n continue_v still_o the_o shepherd_n of_o the_o whole_a militant_a flock_n their_o doctrine_n who_o teach_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v antichrist_n himself_o be_v confute_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n and_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o xvii_o chap._n antichrist_n do_v signify_v the_o adversary_n or_o enemy_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n joan._n aug._n in_o c._n 2._o episto_fw-la 1._o joan._n in_o which_o kind_n of_o malice_n as_o lucifer_n the_o capitaine_fw-fr of_o all_o curse_a rebel_n be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a so_o he_o be_v first_o name_v satan_n which_o be_v to_o say_v a_o adversary_n satan_n satan_n for_o as_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n not_o be_v content_a to_o send_v his_o prophet_n and_o priest_n to_o guide_v man_n to_o life_n everlasting_a at_o the_o last_o send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o man_n flesh_n thereby_o to_o work_v most_o effectual_o our_o salvation_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n satan_n have_v procure_v as_o much_o as_o lay_v in_o he_o that_o man_n shall_v not_o believe_v in_o christ_n nor_o follow_v his_o prophet_n shall_v at_o the_o lgenth_fw-mi attempt_v to_o possess_v a_o certain_a accurse_a man_n by_o who_o he_o may_v work_v his_o feat_n against_o christ_n so_o much_o the_o more_o hurtfullie_o how_o much_o the_o privy_a he_o shall_v lie_v be_v cover_v and_o hide_v both_o with_o man_n flesh_n and_o with_o the_o very_a name_n of_o christ._n as_o therefore_o the_o devil_n shall_v geve_v his_o strength_n and_o power_n most_o special_o to_o that_o curse_a man_n so_o the_o devil_n name_n be_v most_o special_o give_v he_o also_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n where_o he_o be_v call_v of_o s._n paul_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 2_o 2._o thess_n 2_o the_o adversary_n and_o s._n john_n show_v who_o adversary_n he_o be_v 2._o 1._o joan._n 2._o by_o name_v he_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o antichrist_n who_o be_v most_o spitful_o set_v against_o christ_n and_o be_v most_o certeine_o foretell_v to_o come_v and_o aught_o most_o careful_o to_o be_v eschew_v of_o all_o christian_n for_o albeit_o every_o false_a teacher_n be_v a_o certain_a antichriste_n or_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o as_o s._n john_n say_v there_o be_v many_o antichristes_n 2._o 1._o joan._n 2._o yet_o as_o there_o be_v one_o above_o other_o so_o he_o say_v of_o hin_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d you_o have_v hear_v that_o the_o antichrist_n come_v you_o have_v hear_v not_o only_o that_o a_o antichrist_n but_o that_o the_o same_o one_o most_o notable_a antichrist_n come_v now_o this_o singular_a antichrist_n shall_v be_v suffer_v to_o come_v permit_v why_o antichrist_n be_v permit_v partly_o for_o the_o trial_n and_o reveal_n of_o the_o invincible_a strength_n which_o god_n have_v give_fw-ge to_o the_o elect_a partly_o to_o show_v how_o inexcusable_a the_o stubborn_a jew_n be_v who_o pretend_v to_o believe_v the_o old_a prophet_n and_o to_o look_v for_o the_o true_a messiah_n yet_o have_v repel_v jesus_n christ_n who_o most_o evident_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n embrace_v the_o devil_n himself_o of_o who_o all_o the_o prophet_n have_v will_v they_o to_o beware_v for_o s._n paul_n say_v 2._o 2._o thess_n 2._o because_o they_o have_v not_o receve_v the_o love_n of_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v therefore_o god_n shall_v send_v they_o the_o work_n of_o erroure_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v lie_v to_o the_o end_n all_o man_n may_v be_v judge_v who_o have_v not_o beleve_v the_o truth_n but_o have_v consent_v to_o iniquity_n thus_o whereas_o there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o antichrist_n first_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v only_o a_o spirit_n next_o false_a teacher_n thirdlie_o he_o that_o be_v possess_v of_o the_o devil_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n oppugn_v christ_n glory_n most_o of_o all_o in_o apparent_a show_n and_o in_o outward_a work_n question_n the_o question_n the_o question_n be_v not_o now_o of_o the_o two_o first_o kind_n but_o only_o of_o the_o last_o to_o wit_n whether_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o main_a and_o chief_a antichrist_n who_o be_v prophesy_v of_o to_o appear_v so_o singular_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o some_o protestant_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o excessive_a malice_n against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v to_o preach_v yea_o to_o set_v forth_o in_o print_n that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o who_o christ_n commend_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n be_v not_o only_o a_o arm_n or_o hand_n of_o antichriste_n but_o the_o very_a head_n and_o capitaine_fw-fr antichrist_n himself_o who_o shall_v be_v destroy_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n mouth_n 12._o isay_n 12._o among_o other_o bullinger_n bullinger_n one_o henry_n bullinger_n and_o a_o other_o as_o wise_a as_o he_o gualther_n gualther_n call_v rodulph_n gaulter_v each_o of_o they_o minister_n of_o zurich_n have_v set_v this_o doctrine_n abroad_o in_o book_n who_o i_o name_v the_o soon_o because_o their_o book_n be_v translate_v into_o the_o english_a tongue_n as_o a_o special_a treasure_n to_o enrich_v fool_n withal_o where_o as_o in_o deed_n that_o blaspemouse_n doctrine_n be_v direct_o against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n as_o i_o will_v show_v hereafter_o and_o very_o if_o god_n say_v general_o of_o all_o his_o elect_a people_n yea_o if_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o hard_a heart_a jew_n 2._o zacha_fw-la 2._o he_o that_o touch_v you_o touch_v the_o apple_n of_o his_o eye_n if_o he_o say_v more_o special_o concern_v his_o prophet_n and_o priest_n 104._o psal_n 104._o touch_v not_o my_o anoint_a if_o his_o apostle_n be_v never_o to_o he_o then_o any_o other_o 22_o luc._n 22_o because_o they_o tarry_v with_o he_o in_o his_o tentation_n if_o among_o all_o the_o apostle_n s._n peter_n love_v he_o best_o 21._o joan._n 21._o and_o be_v best_o belove_v of_o he_o concern_v the_o love_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n and_o pastor_n of_o his_o flock_n if_o christ_n provide_v by_o singular_a providence_n that_o s._n peter_n shall_v glorify_v he_o by_o suffer_a death_n upon_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n if_o saint_n peter_n chair_n and_o the_o succession_n in_o the_o chief_a bisshoprike_n have_v be_v acknouledge_v in_o rome_n with_o great_a reverence_n of_o 3_o of_o lib._n 3._o c._n 3_o s._n irenaeus_n of_o 3_o of_o lib._n 1._o ep_v 3_o s._n cyprian_n of_o antichristo_fw-la of_o de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la hippolytus_n the_o martyr_n of_o solitar_n of_o tripart_n lib._n 4._o c._n 15_o &_o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la solitar_n athanasius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o likewise_o of_o paulus_n the_o archebisshoppe_n of_o constantinople_n both_o be_v holy_a con_fw-mi essour_n if_o 138_o if_o in_o psal_n 106._o et_fw-la 138_o arnobius_n schismat_fw-la arnobius_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la schismat_fw-la optatus_n s._n damasum_fw-la s._n ad_fw-la
prescript_n it_o have_v be_v always_o the_o fashion_n of_o all_o heretic_n as_o tertullian_n say_v to_o destroy_v other_o man_n building_n as_o to_o undo_v that_o which_o other_o man_n do_v ipsum_fw-la opus_fw-la eorum_fw-la non_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la proprio_fw-la aedificio_fw-la venit_fw-la sed_fw-la de_fw-la veritatis_fw-la destructione_n nostra_fw-la suffodiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la sva_fw-la aedificent_fw-la their_o very_a worck_n rise_v not_o of_o their_o own_o building_n but_o from_o the_o destroy_n of_o the_o truth_n they_o undermine_v our_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v build_v up_o their_o own_o and_o hippolytus_n think_v the_o seal_n of_o antichrist_n to_o be_v nego_fw-la sec_fw-la in_o homi._n de_fw-fr consume_v mat_n sec_fw-la i_o deny_v for_o as_o say_v he_o the_o devil_n do_v exhort_v the_o martyr_n to_o deny_v their_o god_n who_o be_v crucify_v so_o at_o the_o last_o day_n the_o seal_n of_o antichrist_n and_o of_o his_o member_n shall_v be_v nego_fw-la creatorem_fw-la coeli_fw-la &_o terrae_fw-la nego_fw-la baptisma_fw-la nego_fw-la adorationem_fw-la à _fw-la i_o deo_fw-la praestarisoliatam_fw-la i_o deny_v the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o earth_n i_o deny_v baptism_n i_o deny_v the_o adoration_n which_o i_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v unto_o god_n thus_o in_o the_o old_a time_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n preach_v christ_n to_o be_v true_a god_n and_o man_n deny_v what_o the_o old_a heretic_n deny_v arrius_n deny_v his_o true_a godhead_n martion_n and_o valentinus_n and_o manicheus_fw-la deny_v his_o true_a manhood_n apollinaris_n be_v deny_v his_o true_a soul_n the_o monothelit_n deny_v his_o double_a will_n the_o donatists_n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o his_o church_n the_o pelagian_n the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o all_o other_o heretic_n who_o opinion_n always_o detract_v some_o perfection_n from_o christ_n or_o from_o his_o church_n now_o i_o will_v show_v that_o the_o protestant_n do_v the_o like_a in_o our_o tyme._n for_o whereas_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o well_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o by_o the_o witness_n of_o god_n write_v word_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o a_o public_a sacrifice_n of_o priesthood_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n as_o of_o most_o undoubted_a instrument_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o diverse_a other_o godly_a and_o divine_a order_n and_o canon_n have_v they_o any_o other_o gospel_n any_o other_o church_n or_o any_o other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o consist_v in_o deni_v 1._o how_o many_o thing_n the_o protestant_n take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n joan._n 1._o and_o in_o take_v away_o that_o which_o be_v before_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o church_n tawght_fw-mi that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v be_v both_o real_o deliver_v from_o his_o sin_n and_o real_o receave_v faith_n hoape_n and_o charity_n they_o deny_v our_o sin_n to_o be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n who_o come_v for_o that_o purpose_n say_v they_o tarry_v still_o but_o only_o that_o they_o be_v not_o impute_v they_o teach_v also_o that_o no_o justice_n be_v at_o all_o make_v in_o we_o by_o spread_a charity_n in_o our_o heart_n 5._o rom._n 5._o whereas_o s._n paul_n say_v iusti_fw-la constituentur_fw-la multi_fw-la many_o shall_v be_v make_v just_a but_o they_o only_o say_v justice_n be_v impute_v to_o us._n again_o they_o five_o sacrament_n of_o the_o seven_o they_o deny_v that_o baptism_n remit_v our_o sin_n or_o that_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a to_o child_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o ghristian_a parent_n 106._o augustin_n epist_n 106._o which_o be_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o pelagian_n they_o deny_v the_o use_n of_o holy_a oil_n and_o of_o chrism_n they_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o adoration_n and_o reservation_n thereof_o the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n the_o unblody_n sacrifice_n of_o christ_n supper_n the_o communion_n of_o one_o kind_a to_o be_v sufficient_a and_o consequent_o they_o deny_v that_o whole_a christ_n in_o under_o each_o kind_n and_o the_o mingle_n of_o water_n with_o the_o wine_n and_o that_o one_o may_v receive_v alone_o that_o altar_n be_v lawful_a that_o there_o be_v priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o bishop_n be_v of_o any_o high_a degree_n than_o priest_n that_o there_o be_v any_o one_o bisshoppe_n chief_a of_o all_o other_o that_o priest_n can_v forgeve_v sin_n but_o only_o may_v preach_v that_o they_o be_v forgeven_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o appoint_v certain_a day_n of_o fast_v or_o the_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n for_o obedience_n although_o god_n both_o will_v adam_n to_o abstain_v from_o a_o certain_a fruit_n 2._o genes_n 2._o and_o the_o jew_n to_o abstain_v from_o certain_a meat_n they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v to_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n or_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o faithful_a which_o die_v in_o christ_n wherein_o they_o deny_v any_o communion_n of_o prayer_n between_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v alive_a and_o their_o brother_n who_o live_v out_o of_o this_o world_n with_o christ_n they_o deny_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o general_a counsel_n the_o visible_a succession_n of_o bishop_n the_o place_n of_o purgation_n after_o this_o life_n the_o remain_v of_o pain_n after_o the_o sin_n be_v forgeven_v the_o change_a or_o pardome_v of_o the_o say_a pain_n by_o the_o high_a bishop_n the_o use_n and_o moderate_a honour_n of_o image_n the_o sign_n of_o the_o healthful_a cross_n the_o make_n of_o a_o vow_n to_o live_v chaste_a or_o to_o renounce_v all_o propriety_n of_o good_n or_o to_o live_v in_o obedience_n the_o reverence_n do_v the_o relic_n of_o the_o bless_a martyr_n the_o use_n of_o prayer_n in_o the_o holy_a tongue_n the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o unwriten_a verity_n and_o to_o be_v short_a thein_o deny_v the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a bible_n such_o as_o be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o jew_n these_o thing_n and_o many_o other_o like_o while_o they_o deny_v what_o other_o thing_n do_v they_o they_o pull_v down_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n which_o have_v be_v a_o build_n these_o fiften_v hundred_o year_n and_o therein_o they_o prepare_v a_o way_n to_o antichrist_n who_o in_o the_o end_n must_v deny_v all_o that_o they_o as_o yet_o leave_v undeny_v for_o if_o they_o shall_v open_o deny_v every_o whit_n â_o 2_o thes_n â_o than_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o work_n and_o many_o simple_a man_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v deceive_v by_o they_o who_o now_o be_v deceive_v because_o they_o pretend_v to_o refoorme_n and_o not_o to_o take_v away_o christ_n religion_n but_o when_o the_o time_n be_v ripe_a than_o the_o iniquity_n which_o be_v now_o begin_v must_v be_v fulfil_v and_o so_o be_v the_o whole_a religion_n destroy_v i_o will_v this_o be_v not_o true_a and_o yet_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o every_o protestant_n know_v not_o so_o much_o because_o satan_n the_o great_a capitaine_fw-fr of_o their_o army_n keep_v his_o counsel_n to_o himself_o know_v that_o how_o much_o the_o close_o he_o work_v the_o more_o hurt_n he_o be_v like_a to_o do_v but_o god_n through_o mercy_n detect_v his_o snare_n and_o warn_v they_o 6._o genes_n 1â_n &_o 6._o who_o will_v be_v save_v to_o flee_v into_o the_o hill_n with_o loth_n and_o to_o the_o ship_n of_o the_o church_n with_o no_n there_o to_o provide_v for_o their_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o our_o lord_n grant_v through_o his_o bitter_a passion_n amen_n finis_fw-la librum_fw-la istum_fw-la de_fw-la primatu_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la &_o petra_n ecclesiae_fw-la universalis_fw-la legerunt_fw-la viri_fw-la sacrae_fw-la theologiae_n &_o auglici_fw-la idiomatis_fw-la peritissimi_fw-la quibus_fw-la iudico_fw-la meritò_fw-la &_o tutò_fw-la credendum_fw-la esse_fw-la ut_fw-la sine_fw-la periculo_fw-la imo_fw-la summa_fw-la cum_fw-la utilitate_fw-la ewl_fw-la gari_fw-la possit_fw-la cunerus_n petri_n p.s._n petri_n lovanij_fw-la 25._o februa_n anno._n 1566._o a_o brief_a some_z of_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o this_o treatise_n the_o preface_n contain_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o difference_n between_o a_o dominion_n and_o a_o primacy_n 17._o the_o apostle_n strife_n concern_v superiority_n be_v declare_v 25._o 26._o 27._o that_o there_o be_v one_o great_a among_o the_o apostle_n 20._o usque_fw-la 37._o to_o be_v a_o ruler_n and_o as_o a_o minister_n do_v not_o repugn_v 46._o 47._o the_o preeminence_n of_o priest_n above_o king_n 51._o 52._o &_o caet_fw-la a_o king_n can_v not_o be_v supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n because_o by_o right_n and_o law_n he_o can_v not_o practice_v all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n 61._o 64._o 67._o the_o high_a priest_n be_v prefer_v before_o the_o king_n by_o god_n law_n 72._o 74._o 76._o the_o evil_a life_n of_o a_o bishop_n take_v not_o away_o his_o authority_n 78._o 79._o the_o difference_n between_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o temporal_a prince_n 80._o usque_fw-la 88_o that_o moses_n be_v a_o priest_n 83._o 84._o 85._o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 96._o the_o promise_n to_o be_v call_v peter_n be_v the_o first_o cause_n why_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o he_o 110._o the_o protestant_n can_v not_o tell_v which_o be_v the_o first_o literal_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 135._o how_o peter_n bear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n 165._o the_o objection_n against_o s._n peter_n supremacy_n be_v answer_v 219._o usque_fw-la 230._o how_o christ_n love_v peter_n above_o other_o 237._o the_o church_n never_o lack_v a_o visible_a rock_n 270._o 271._o the_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o church_n tend_v to_o unity_n 299._o why_o s._n peter_n die_v at_o rome_n 313._o 313._o s._n augustin_n mind_n touch_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n 348._o usque_fw-la 372._o a_o priest_n above_o the_o emperor_n in_o eeclesiasticall_a cause_n 378._o the_o oath_n of_o the_o royal_a supremacy_n be_v intolerable_a 383._o constantine_n baptize_v at_o rome_n 391_o phocas_n do_v not_o first_o make_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n head_n of_o all_o church_n 405._o usque_fw-la 410._o why_o antichrist_n be_v permit_v to_o come_v 423._o heretic_n depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n 469._o heretic_n be_v once_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o church_n have_v new_a name_n 471._o why_o among_o the_o catholics_n some_o be_v call_v franciscan_n dominican_n &_o caet_fw-la 477._o heretic_n can_v never_o agree_v 479._o the_o short_a reign_n of_o heretic_n 489_o &_o caet_fw-la heretic_n preach_v without_o commission_n 496._o heretic_n do_v prefer_v the_o temporal_a reign_n or_o sword_n before_o the_o spiritual_a 499._o they_o be_v the_o member_n of_o antichrist_n who_o withstand_v the_o external_a and_o public_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n church_n 518._o heretic_n deprive_v christ_n of_o his_o glorious_a inheritance_n in_o many_o nation_n together_o 517._o the_o intolerable_a pride_n of_o heretic_n in_o make_v themselves_o only_a judge_n of_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n 530._o the_o protestant_n teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o old_a heretic_n do_v 553._o the_o protestant_n be_v the_o right_a member_n of_o antichrist_n in_o that_o they_o spoil_v god_n church_n of_o very_a many_o gift_n and_o grace_n and_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n 560._o finis_fw-la fault_n escape_v in_o the_o print_n page_n line_n fault_n correction_n 10._o 10._o shephead_n shepherd_n 23._o 22._o they_o because_o they_o but_o because_o 98._o 22._o resurrection_n by_o resurrection_n by_o 103._o 24._o confession_n be_v confession_n be_v 106._o 13._o steadfastness_n of_o steadfastness_n or_o of_o â16_n 9_o and_o promise_v and_o be_v promise_v 145._o 8._o and_o in_o that_o and_o that_o 177._o 21._o the_o thing_n the_o man_n 186._o 6._o rock_n of_o rock_n or_o 195._o 14._o sbme_v some_o 208._o 23._o when_o augustine_n when_o augustine_n 209._o 11._o hy_o i_o by_o i_o 214._o 1._o to_o true_a to_o be_v true_a 2â9_n 17._o in_o omnibus_fw-la in_o ovibus_fw-la 26â_n 1._o to_o the_o the_o 273._o 15._o be_v be_v be_v where_o 281._o 6._o the_o pordinary_a the_o ordinary_a 382._o 7._o can_v govern_v can_v not_o govern_v 426._o 14._o conessour_n confessor_n 430._o 13._o teach_v teach_v 432._o 24._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 408._o 1._o out_o the_o out_o of_o the_o 496._o 2._o rome_v from_o 516._o â_o haven_n heaven_n 539._o 22._o s._n saul_n s._n paul_n 553._o 21._o bishop_n bishop_n i_o f_o respââite_fw-fr volatilia_fw-la coeli_fw-la et_fw-la pullos_fw-la corvorum_n
cuncti_fw-la clave_n regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la accipiant_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la aequo_fw-la super_fw-la eos_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la fortitudo_fw-la solidetur_fw-la tamen_fw-la propterea_fw-la inter_fw-la duodecim_fw-la unus_fw-la eligitur_fw-la ut_fw-la capite_fw-la constituto_fw-la schismatis_fw-la tollatur_fw-la occasio_fw-la albeit_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n in_o a_o other_o place_n be_v do_v upon_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o do_v receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fasten_v equal_o upon_o they_o yet_o therefore_o one_o be_v choose_v among_o twelve_o that_o a_o head_n be_v make_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o three_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v note_v in_o this_o sentence_n first_o that_o the_o church_n be_v so_o build_v upon_o peter_n the_o rock_n that_o in_o the_o same_o place_n where_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o peter_n the_o like_a be_v not_o do_v upon_o the_o other_o apostle_n second_o the_o church_n be_v equal_o found_v upon_o all_o the_o apostle_n in_o a_o other_o place_n 20._o joan._n 20._o to_o wit_n when_o they_o be_v send_v of_o christ_n as_o christ_n be_v send_v of_o his_o father_n to_o bind_v or_o to_o loose_v and_o so_o forth_o 20._o joan._n 20._o three_o one_o be_v choose_v head_n of_o the_o twelve_o to_o the_o intent_n schism_n may_v be_v avoid_v a_o man_n may_v say_v if_o all_o be_v equal_a answer_v the_o objection_n and_o answer_v how_o be_v one_o head_n this_o shall_v be_v more_o full_o answer_v hereafter_o i_o say_v for_o this_o time_n all_o twelve_o as_o touch_v the_o office_n of_o the_o apostlesship_n be_v equal_a and_o all_o be_v rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o be_v consider_v as_o particular_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n whereby_o they_o have_v particular_a authority_n to_o teach_v some_o here_o and_o some_o there_o as_o now_o bishop_n do_v every_o man_n in_o his_o own_o diocese_n so_o one_o be_v their_o head_n how_o can_v it_o else_o be_v that_o s._n hierome_n shall_v agree_v with_o himself_o all_o be_v equal_a and_o one_o be_v the_o head_n can_v the_o head_n be_v equal_a with_o the_o other_o member_n or_o be_v it_o not_o high_a of_o all_o and_o chief_a of_o all_o we_o must_v they_o say_v that_o alare_fw-la equal_a in_o the_o office_n of_o they_o apostleship_n but_o peter_n be_v otherwise_o appoint_v the_o chief_a apostle_n and_o head_n in_o the_o bisshoplie_n power_n which_o every_o apostle_n have_v beside_o the_o apostolic_a office_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o s._n hierom_n write_v 2_o hieron_n adversus_fw-la jovin_n li._n 2_o propterea_fw-la inter_fw-la duodecim_fw-la unus_fw-la eligitur_fw-la ut_fw-la capite_fw-la constituto_fw-la schismatis_fw-la occasio_fw-la tollatur_fw-la therefore_o among_o the_o twelve_o one_o be_v choose_v to_o the_o end_n a_o head_n be_v appoint_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o there_o s._n hierome_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o apostle_n own_o choice_n but_o of_o christ_n own_o choose_v it_o appear_v evidentlie_o when_o he_o say_v afterward_o that_o the_o good_a manâer_n christ_n will_v not_o prefer_v s._n john_n before_o s._n peter_n levin_z lib._n 1._o advers_a levin_z lest_o he_o shall_v cause_v so_o young_a a_o man_n to_o be_v envy_v at_o neither_o do_v it_o suffice_v that_o during_o the_o apostle_n time_n only_o such_o a_o rock_n and_o head_n shall_v be_v appoint_v for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n neither_o end_v in_o their_o time_n and_o their_o successor_n in_o their_o bisshoply_n authority_n have_v without_o all_o controversy_n less_o assurance_n of_o grace_n than_o they_o have_v and_o be_v also_o far_o more_o in_o number_n have_v more_o need_n than_o the_o apostle_n of_o a_o head_n and_o of_o a_o perpetual_a rock_n among_o they_o whereunto_o they_o may_v lean_v so_o that_o leo_n the_o great_a have_v most_o just_a cause_n to_o say_v of_o s._n peter_n 3._o in_o anivers_n assumpt_n serm_n 3._o super_fw-la hoc_fw-la saxum_fw-la hanc_fw-la soliditatem_fw-la &_o sortitudinem_fw-la aeternum_fw-la construam_fw-la templum_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la meae_fw-la coelo_fw-la inserenda_fw-la sublimitas_fw-la in_o huius_fw-la firmitate_fw-la consurget_fw-la upon_o this_o stone_n this_o soundness_n and_o strength_n i_o will_v build_v a_o everlasting_a temple_n and_o the_o height_n of_o my_o church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v graff_v in_o heaven_n shall_v rise_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o rock_n s._n augustine_n affirm_v in_o many_o place_n that_o s._n peter_n do_v represent_v the_o whole_a church_n according_a to_o which_o sense_n he_o write_v thus_o 165._o epist_n 165._o petro_n totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la figuram_fw-la gerenti_fw-la dominus_fw-la ait_fw-la super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la our_o lord_n say_v unto_o peter_n bear_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n so_o that_o he_o geve_v this_o cause_n why_o this_o much_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n very_o because_o peter_n bear_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o peter_n do_v bear_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n sure_o because_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o rock_n of_o the_o whole_a for_o every_o prince_n do_v bear_v the_o figure_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o general_a person_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o of_o they_o who_o be_v commit_v to_o his_o charge_n for_o that_o they_o all_o be_v as_o it_o be_v gather_v together_o and_o unite_v in_o he_o alone_o and_o this_o to_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o s._n augustine_n 124_o in_o joan._n tract_n 124_o it_o appear_v evidentlie_o by_o his_o own_o word_n ecclesiae_fw-la petrus_n apostolus_fw-la propter_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la svi_fw-la primatum_fw-la gerebat_fw-la figurata_fw-la generalitate_fw-la personam_fw-la peter_n the_o apostle_n by_o a_o generality_n which_o be_v figure_v do_v hear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o apostleship_n peter_n do_v bear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n not_o as_o man_n carry_v burden_n on_o their_o back_n but_o by_o a_o figure_a generality_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o a_o general_a officer_n for_o he_o do_v bear_v their_o person_n not_o natural_o but_o figurative_o to_o wit_n by_o interpretation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o by_o real_a extension_n of_o his_o body_n to_o be_v make_v so_o big_a as_o to_o uphold_v all_o their_o body_n figurata_fw-la generalitas_fw-la figurata_fw-la s._n augustine_n call_v that_o a_o figure_a generality_n when_o it_o be_v not_o ordinary_o and_o natural_o make_v but_o when_o the_o law_n do_v impute_v and_o take_v it_o so_o to_o be_v for_o the_o law_n interprete_v and_o expound_v the_o chief_a officer_n of_o a_o common_a weal_n to_o bear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o self_n common_a weal._n and_o thereupon_o the_o head_n be_v present_a for_o the_o common_a weal_n behalf_n the_o law_n work_v as_o if_o the_o common_a weal_n itself_o be_v present_a when_o the_o head_n alone_o be_v present_a what_o be_v they_o peter_n office_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostleship_n he_o be_v first_o and_o chief_a &_o propter_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la svi_fw-la primatum_fw-la propter_fw-la propter_fw-la and_o for_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o apostleship_n he_o signify_v all_o his_o flock_n in_o himself_o alone_o so_o that_o he_o take_v the_o key_n for_o all_o and_o be_v the_o general_a rock_n for_o every_o other_o particular_a rock_n and_o for_o that_o primacy_n of_o his_o he_o bear_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n to_o show_v yet_o far_o the_o force_n of_o this_o reason_n the_o reader_n must_v consider_v that_o first_o peter_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o therein_o to_o bear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n figurata_fw-la generalitate_fw-la which_o be_v to_o say_v as_o if_o he_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o general_a or_o the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n of_o the_o church_n which_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o but_o be_v only_o the_o officer_n thereof_o secondary_o a_o reason_n be_v give_v why_o peter_n shall_v signify_v or_o bear_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n more_o than_o any_o other_o and_o the_o cause_n be_v propter_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la svi_fw-la primatum_fw-la for_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o apostleship_n that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o he_o be_v chief_a if_o this_o cause_n be_v not_o find_v in_o s._n augustine_n the_o protestant_n may_v have_v some_o pretence_n to_o say_v as_o they_o do_v verily_o that_o peter_n be_v not_o in_o deed_n the_o rock_n nor_o head_n but_o only_o that_o he_o be_v call_v so_o to_o signify_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v build_v upon_o christ_n but_o now_o peter_n do_v not_o signify_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o christ_n as_o peter_n be_v a_o man_n nor_o as_o he_o be_v a_o faithful_a man_n nor_o as_o he_o
verbo_fw-la domini_fw-la vnde_fw-la probem_fw-la quaeris_fw-la exit_fw-la verbo_fw-la domini_fw-la cui_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la dico_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la apostolorun_n sic_fw-la absolute_a &_o indiscrete_a totae_fw-la commissae_fw-la sunt_fw-la oves_fw-la si_fw-mi i_o amas_fw-la petre_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la quas_fw-la illius_fw-la aut_fw-la illius_fw-la populos_fw-la civitatis_fw-la aut_fw-la regionis_fw-la aut_fw-la certi_fw-la regni_fw-la oues_fw-la meas_fw-la inquit_fw-la cui_fw-la non_fw-la planum_fw-la non_fw-la designasse_n aliquas_fw-la sed_fw-la assignasse_n omnes_fw-la nihil_fw-la excipitur_fw-la ubi_fw-la distinguitur_fw-la nihil_fw-la other_o pastor_n have_v flock_n assign_v to_o they_o every_o pastor_n one_o flock_n to_o thou_o all_o be_v commit_v one_o flock_n to_o one_o shepherd_n and_o not_o only_o of_o the_o sheep_n but_o also_o of_o the_o pastor_n thou_o alone_o be_v the_o pastor_n do_v thou_o ask_v how_o i_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n word_n god_n word_n for_o to_o who_o i_o say_v not_o only_o of_o the_o bishop_n but_o also_o of_o the_o apostle_n so_o absolute_o and_o without_o distinction_n be_v all_o the_o sheep_n commit_v if_o thou_o love_v i_o peter_n feed_v mie_a sheep_n which_o sheep_n whether_o the_o people_n of_o this_o or_o of_o that_o city_n or_o country_n or_o of_o a_o certain_a kingdom_n he_o say_v mie_a sheep_n to_o who_o be_v it_o not_o evident_a that_o christ_n do_v not_o appoint_v out_o some_o but_o assign_v all_o nothing_o be_v except_v where_o nothing_o be_v distincted_a this_o place_n need_v no_o declaration_n it_o be_v so_o full_a in_o all_o point_n wherefore_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v by_o this_o time_n sufficient_o prove_v that_o s._n peter_n do_v excel_v a_o great_a way_n even_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n in_o the_o pastoral_a authority_n of_o feed_v christ_n flock_n by_o which_o power_n s._n james_n otherwise_o s._n peter_n equal_a yet_o after_o he_o be_v once_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v thereby_o of_o necessity_n subject_a unto_o peter_n as_o who_o can_v not_o feed_v a_o part_n of_o that_o flock_n which_o be_v whole_o commit_v unto_o peter_n but_o by_o the_o acknowlege_v of_o peter_n his_o general_a shepherd_n in_o sign_n whereof_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o read_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o any_o other_o then_o of_o christ_n do_v yet_o with_o two_o other_o apostle_n orde_n in_o s._n james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n 1._o euseb_n li._n 2_o cap._n 1._o as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n do_v witness_v in_o consideration_n of_o which_o s._n peter_n bishoplie_n power_n arnobius_n who_o will_v never_o have_v call_v peter_n the_o apostle_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o doubt_v not_o to_o name_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o to_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o this_o place_n of_o the_o gospel_n where_o peter_n alone_o be_v make_v the_o pastor_n while_o it_o be_v say_v to_o he_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o because_o his_o other_o word_n be_v allege_v before_o it_o may_v suffice_v now_o to_o hear_v he_o say_v this_o much_o only_a of_o s._n peter_n 138._o arnobius_n in_o psalm_n 138._o ecce_fw-la apostolo_n poenitenti_fw-la succurritur_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la episcopus_fw-la behold_v the_o apostle_n who_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o bisshoppe_n be_v penitent_a find_v succour_v can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o plain_o but_o you_o will_v say_v dom._n in_o epist_n â_o ad_fw-la jacobun_n from_o dom._n that_o s._n clement_n geve_v the_o very_a same_o title_n to_o s._n james_n also_o as_o though_o saint_n james_n be_v the_o archbishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la have_v not_o diverse_a other_o bishop_n under_o hin_n of_o which_o bishop_n he_o may_v well_o be_v call_v the_o bishop_n but_o s._n peter_n be_v alone_o call_v the_o pastor_n as_o arnobiê°_n show_v before_o and_o so_o be_v a_o bishop_n as_o he_o be_v a_o pastor_n must_v be_v understand_v not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o some_o bishop_n as_o every_o archebishop_n be_v but_o also_o a_o bishop_n of_o all_o bishop_n as_o noman_n at_o all_o be_v beside_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n but_o peter_n be_v alone_o the_o pastor_n be_v alone_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o very_a apostle_n also_o in_o that_o behalf_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n and_o not_o in_o that_o respect_n as_o they_o be_v apostle_n yea_o but_o here_o a_o other_o may_v bring_v forth_o s._n cyprian_n baptizand_n ad_fw-la quintum_fw-la de_fw-la haeret_fw-la baptizand_n who_o say_v neque_fw-la quisquam_fw-la nostrûm_fw-la episcopum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la se_fw-la esse_fw-la constituit_fw-la neither_o do_v any_o of_o we_o make_v himself_o a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n i_o pray_v you_o sir_n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n because_o no_o man_n make_v himself_o a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n shall_v therefore_o christ_n make_v no_o man_n a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n s._n cyprian_n speak_v of_o his_o own_o deed_n and_o arnobius_n speak_v of_o christ_n deed_n but_o if_o christ_n himself_o make_v noman_n a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n how_o be_v then_o s._n james_n call_v a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n or_o be_v s._n james_n that_o which_o s._n peter_n can_v not_o be_v again_o saint_n cyprian_n mean_v that_o in_o matter_n which_o be_v yet_o in_o controversy_n no_o man_n may_v play_v the_o bishop_n of_o bisshoppe_n in_o judge_v a_o other_o bishop_n or_o in_o prescribe_v to_o he_o what_o he_o shall_v believe_v in_o doubtful_a case_n but_o s._n augustine_n expound_v this_o very_a place_n of_o s._n cyprian_n 3._o de_fw-fr baptis_fw-la count_v donanist_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o show_v it_o to_o be_v otherwise_o in_o matter_n which_o be_v already_o well_o know_v and_o thorough_o discuss_v in_o the_o church_n moreover_o humilians_fw-la ibidem_fw-la see_v in_o omnibus_fw-la humilians_fw-la saint_n cyprian_n in_o that_o place_n show_v his_o humility_n and_o his_o love_n of_o unity_n as_o saint_n augustine_n have_v well_o note_v in_o that_o he_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o bishop_n of_o some_o bisshoppe_n because_o he_o be_v a_o archebisshop_n yet_o do_v renounce_v to_o use_v his_o authority_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v above_o other_o bisshoppe_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v always_o both_o sit_v and_o speak_v first_o in_o the_o provincial_a council_n as_o both_o he_o and_o his_o ancestor_n also_o have_v do_v last_o of_o all_o s._n cyprian_n do_v most_o evidentlie_o confess_v the_o supremacy_n of_o s._n peter_n by_o that_o which_o he_o write_v of_o his_o principal_a chaier_n and_o succession_n eccles_n lib._n i._o ep_n 3._o et_fw-fr de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v afterward_o at_o this_o time_n it_o suffice_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v teach_v by_o arnobius_n to_o have_v be_v a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n which_o thing_n no_o catholic_a father_n do_v at_o any_o time_n deny_v schis_n lib._n 7._o de_fw-fr schis_n yea_o on_o the_o other_o side_n optatus_n fear_v not_o to_o write_v thus_o of_o s._n peter_n preferri_fw-la apostolis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la meruit_fw-la &_o clave_n regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la communicandas_fw-la coeteris_fw-la solus_fw-la accepit_fw-la peter_n deserve_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o he_o alone_o take_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o be_v communicate_v unto_o other_o communicate_v how_o the_o key_n be_v communicate_v this_o preferment_n in_o take_v the_o key_n to_o be_v communicate_v with_o other_o be_v to_o be_v mean_v concern_v that_o while_n s._n peter_n alone_o be_v make_v the_o high_a pastor_n and_o bishop_n thereby_o the_o key_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o other_o apostle_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o all_o be_v bishop_n and_o not_o so_o as_o though_o he_o communicate_v the_o key_n to_o they_o in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v apostle_n for_o the_o apostle_n take_v the_o key_n belong_v to_o their_o apostolic_a office_n immediate_o of_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o s._n peter_n according_o as_o s._n paul_n teach_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o apostle_n neither_o of_o man_n 1_o galat._n 1_o nor_o by_o a_o man_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o when_o peter_n alone_o be_v say_v to_o have_v take_v the_o key_n it_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o alone_o as_o high_a priest_n and_o chief_a bishop_n take_v the_o key_n of_o his_o pastoral_a office_n to_o be_v communicate_v by_o he_o to_o particular_a bishop_n his_o inferior_n for_o as_o leo_n write_v of_o his_o christian_n brother_n petrum_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la romanae_fw-la sedis_fw-la praesulem_fw-la assumpt_n leo._n ser._n 2._o in_o aniver_n assumpt_n sed_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la noverunt_fw-la esse_fw-la primatem_fw-la they_o know_v peter_n to_o be_v not_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n but_o also_o to_o be_v the_o primate_n of_o all_o bishop_n this_o most_o plain_a sentence_n i_o suppose_v need_v no_o declaration_n but_o it_o show_v s._n peter_n beside_o his_o apostolic_a office_n to_o have_v a_o
he_o as_o the_o head_n of_o all_o bishop_n have_v it_o specify_v to_o he_o before_o they_o have_v it_o for_o whereas_o their_o authority_n be_v show_v to_o have_v be_v give_v in_o the_o eightenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o s._n matthew_n 18._o matth._n 18._o and_o in_o the_o twenty_o of_o s._n john_n 20._o joan._n 20._o the_o authority_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v describe_v and_o promise_v in_o the_o sixteen_o of_o s._n matthew_n 16_o matth._n 16_o and_o it_o depend_v of_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n wherein_o he_o say_v thou_o shall_v be_v call_v peter_n or_o the_o rock_n the_o which_o promise_n be_v make_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o s._n john_n not_o only_o before_o the_o apostle_n be_v choose_v 1._o joan._n 1._o but_o also_o before_o they_o be_v call_v to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n iubaianum_fw-la ad_fw-la iubaianum_fw-la in_o consideration_n whereof_o s._n cyprian_n may_v bold_o say_v petro_n primus_fw-la dominus_fw-la super_fw-la quem_fw-la aedificavit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o unde_fw-la unitatis_fw-la originem_fw-la instituit_fw-la &_o ostendit_fw-la potestatem_fw-la istam_fw-la dedit_fw-la ut_fw-la id_fw-la solueretur_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la quod_fw-la ille_fw-la soluisset_fw-la our_o lord_n do_v first_o geve_v unto_o peter_n upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o church_n and_o from_o who_o he_o do_v institute_v and_o show_v the_o original_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n this_o power_n that_o what_o soever_o he_o do_v loose_a it_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o the_o earth_n notewel_o notewel_o when_o one_o have_v first_o that_o right_a and_o power_n alone_o which_o afterward_o other_o have_v if_o there_o be_v any_o ordinary_a power_n of_o that_o thing_n at_o all_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o he_o who_o have_v it_o first_o order_n ordinary_a order_n for_o whereas_o all_o ordinary_a power_n depend_v chefelie_o of_o order_n and_o whereas_o in_o order_n nothing_o can_v be_v before_o that_o which_o be_v first_o one_o first_o one_o see_v s._n peter_n have_v first_o of_o all_o the_o right_a of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o himself_o alone_o 16._o matth._n 16._o and_o see_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o forgeve_a and_o of_o retain_v sin_n be_v ordinary_o in_o the_o church_n it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o but_o that_o ordinary_a power_n be_v first_o in_o s._n peter_n alone_o 124._o augustin_n in_o joan_n tract_n 124._o if_o the_o pordinary_a power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v once_o in_o one_o pastor_n alone_o it_o must_v still_o continue_v concern_v that_o degree_n in_o one_o alone_a if_o it_o shall_v at_o the_o least_o remain_v still_o the_o same_o power_n for_o if_o it_o be_v give_v to_o many_o and_o be_v equal_a in_o they_o all_o it_o be_v not_o now_o the_o same_o which_o be_v promise_v and_o give_v first_o to_o peter_n alone_o democraty_n monarchy_n aristocratie_n democraty_n but_o a_o other_o kind_n of_o power_n even_o as_o the_o government_n of_o one_o prince_n differ_v in_o kind_n from_o the_o government_n which_o be_v equal_o common_a either_o to_o many_o or_o to_o the_o whole_a people_n see_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o same_o power_n over_o the_o sheep_n which_o s._n peter_n have_v concern_v the_o exercise_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o bind_v lose_v 20._o joan._n 20._o preach_v and_o baptise_v and_o yet_o their_o authority_n can_v not_o be_v the_o ordinary_a power_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n because_o they_o be_v many_o whereas_o the_o ordinary_a power_n be_v êmise_v before_o to_o one_o alone_o it_o do_v ensue_v 16._o mat._n 16._o that_o they_o have_v their_o authority_n delegated_a and_o special_o appoint_v to_o they_o extraordinary_o only_o the_o apostle_n power_n be_v delegated_a for_o their_o life_n only_o therefore_o although_o they_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o s._n peter_n yet_o they_o do_v it_o by_o delegation_n and_o by_o special_a commission_n whereas_o s._n peter_n alone_o be_v the_o ordinary_a chief_a shepherd_n according_a to_o who_o pattern_n there_o must_v still_o be_v some_o one_o appoint_v to_o feed_v christ_n whole_a flock_n no_o man_n be_v at_o this_o day_n that_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o write_v we_o a_o other_o gospel_n or_o to_o increase_v the_o canonical_a epistle_n or_o to_o warrant_v that_o he_o receive_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 8._o rom._n 8._o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v that_o authority_n die_v with_o they_o and_o come_v to_o none_o other_o after_o they_o and_o consequent_o it_o be_v not_o ordinary_a but_o only_o be_v commit_v to_o a_o few_o during_o their_o own_o life_n but_o the_o ordinary_a authority_n of_o this_o high_a administration_n begin_v in_o one_o alone_a and_o therefore_o it_o must_v continue_v still_o in_o one_o alone_a there_o must_v be_v still_o one_o rock_n 16_o matth._n 16_o beside_o and_o above_o all_o petite_fw-fr rock_n there_o must_v be_v still_o one_o shepherd_n 21._o joan._n 21._o beside_o and_o above_o many_o petite_fw-fr shepherd_n there_o must_v be_v still_o one_o great_a than_o other_o 22._o luc._n 22._o who_o may_v be_v make_v as_o the_o young_a and_o for_o who_o faith_n christ_n have_v pray_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v strengthen_v his_o brother_n and_o very_o see_v as_o s._n bernard_n say_v there_o be_v most_o perfection_n in_o unity_n 2._o de_fw-fr consid_fw-la lib._n 2._o and_o in_o all_o division_n some_o imperfection_n be_v include_v shall_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n have_v choose_v to_o govern_v his_o church_n in_o earth_n rather_o in_o a_o unperfit_a then_o in_o a_o perfect_a sort_n again_o since_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n must_v needs_o be_v more_o perfect_a than_o the_o state_n of_o the_o law_n which_o bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n 7._o heb._n 7._o and_o yet_o see_v in_o the_o law_n the_o ordinary_a pastor_n be_v one_o high_a priest_n and_o bishop_n as_z aaron_z and_o his_o seed_n after_o he_o have_v many_o synagoge_n and_o levit_n under_o his_o supreme_a government_n 3._o num._n 3._o what_o reason_n can_v bear_v that_o the_o state_n of_o our_o visible_a church_n shall_v lack_v also_o in_o earth_n one_o high_a priest_n and_o bishop_n over_o many_o particular_a parish_n and_o diocese_n thus_o have_v we_o both_o natural_a reason_n the_o example_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n for_o one_o chief_a bishop_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n also_o it_o appear_v most_o evidentlie_o because_o they_o geve_v such_o a_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n the_o which_o reason_n without_o a_o extraordinary_a appointement_n of_o god_n can_v never_o agree_v but_o only_o to_o one_o shepherd_n who_o may_v be_v above_o the_o rest_n i_o say_v without_o a_o extraordinary_a appointment_n of_o god_n for_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v many_o equal_o why_o twelue_v apostle_n govern_v equal_o and_o be_v all_o equal_a do_v govern_v the_o church_n in_o a_o maruelouse_a unity_n and_o concord_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v all_o but_o one_o man_n the_o which_o spirit_n of_o unity_n christ_n give_v they_o that_o his_o institution_n of_o twelve_o equal_a governor_n for_o the_o time_n may_v well_o appear_v not_o to_o be_v slaunderouse_a or_o hurtful_a unto_o his_o church_n for_o he_o will_v never_o have_v send_v many_o with_o equal_a authority_n into_o the_o whole_a world_n except_o he_o have_v be_v able_a to_o make_v they_o govern_v with_o one_o mind_n spirit_n and_o hart_n but_o see_v it_o be_v still_o a_o miraculouse_a thing_n to_o see_v twelve_o and_o much_o more_o to_o see_v many_o thousand_o bishop_n and_o ruler_n be_v all_o equal_a still_o to_o govern_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o their_o equal_a authority_n without_o schism_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v that_o apostolic_a authority_n be_v only_o institute_v for_o the_o better_a publish_n of_o the_o faith_n do_v now_o cease_v and_o one_o shepherd_n be_v ordinary_o alone_o set_v over_o all_o by_o who_o general_a power_n it_o may_v appear_v that_o christ_n church_n be_v but_o one_o for_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n which_o s._n cyprian_n bring_v why_o christ_n build_v his_o church_n upon_o s._n peter_n ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la super_fw-la unum_fw-la qui_fw-la clave_n eius_fw-la accepit_fw-la jubaianum_fw-la ad_fw-la jubaianum_fw-la voce_fw-la dni_fw-la fundata_fw-la est_fw-la the_o church_n which_o be_v one_o be_v found_v by_o our_o lord_n voice_n upon_o one_o who_o take_v the_o key_n thereof_o praelatorum_fw-la de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la and_o again_o quamuis_fw-la apostolis_n omnibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n tamen_fw-la ut_fw-la unitatem_fw-la manifestaret_fw-la unitatis_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la originem_fw-la ab_fw-la uno_fw-la incipientem_fw-la sva_fw-la authoritate_fw-la disposuit_fw-la although_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n geve_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n like_o power_n and_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v
s._n paul_n or_o say_v to_o sit_v in_o his_o chair_n but_o only_o in_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n as_o the_o whole_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n do_v witness_v whereby_o we_o be_v infourm_v that_o rome_n be_v the_o place_n choose_v by_o christ_n himself_o where_o s._n peter_n chair_n shall_v rest_n pontificali_fw-la ambros_n lib._n 5._o post_v ep_n 32._o in_o pontificali_fw-la for_o s._n peter_n retourninge_v to_o rome_n upon_o the_o former_a vision_n do_v before_o his_o death_n consecrate_v s._n clement_n bisshoppe_n cvi_fw-la &_o cathedram_fw-la say_v damasus_n vel_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la omnem_fw-la commisit_fw-la dicens_fw-la to_o who_o he_o commit_v also_o his_o chair_n or_o all_o the_o church_n sayinge_v sicut_fw-la mihi_fw-la gubernandi_fw-la tradita_fw-la est_fw-la à _fw-la domino_fw-la meo_fw-la jesu_fw-la christo_fw-la potestas_fw-la ligandi_fw-la soluendique_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la tibi_fw-la committo_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o the_o power_n of_o govern_v of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v commit_v to_o i_o of_o my_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n even_o so_o i_o commit_v to_o thou_o also_o that_o thou_o may_v ordain_v others_z by_o who_o diverse_a cause_n may_v be_v dispose_v and_o such_o act_n as_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o the_o church_n may_v be_v repel_v and_o thou_o must_v not_o be_v find_v give_v to_o the_o care_n of_o this_o world_n but_o only_a endeavour_n to_o geve_v most_o leisure_n to_o prayer_n and_o to_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n 1._o clemens_n in_o epist_n 1._o the_o like_a report_n s._n clement_n himself_o make_v of_o this_o commission_n which_o s._n peter_n give_v to_o he_o who_o epistle_n ruffinus_n turn_v into_o latin_a above_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n past_a recognit_fw-la ruffinus_n in_o praefatione_fw-la recognit_fw-la and_o in_o the_o preface_n which_o he_o make_v to_o the_o recognition_n of_o s._n clement_n he_o so_o well_o declare_v that_o epistle_n of_o s._n clement_n to_o have_v be_v of_o full_a credit_n in_o his_o time_n and_o before_o that_o he_o answer_v such_o objection_n as_o may_v seem_v to_o make_v against_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o it_o tertullian_n also_o confess_v haeret_fw-la de_fw-fr prescript_n adversus_fw-la haeret_fw-la that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v show_v evidence_n that_o s._n clement_n be_v ordain_v of_o peter_n and_o s._n hierom_n namely_o say_v catalogo_fw-la in_o catalogo_fw-la plerique_fw-la latinorun_n secundum_fw-la post_fw-la petrun_v apostolun_n putant_fw-la fuisse_fw-la clementem_fw-la the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o latin_n think_v clement_n to_o have_v be_v second_o or_z next_z after_o peter_n the_o apostle_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v jovin_n aduersus_fw-la jovin_n clemens_n successor_n apostoli_fw-la petri_n scribit_fw-la epistolas_fw-la clemens_n the_o successor_n of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n write_v epistle_n leo_fw-la the_o second_o marianus_n scotus_n and_o diverse_a other_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n now_o whereas_o linus_n and_o cletus_n by_o the_o life_n time_n of_o s._n peter_n as_o damasus_n and_o ruffinus_n do_v witness_n do_v administer_v many_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o bisshoprike_v as_o be_v in_o the_o exterior_a matter_n coadiutour_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o grecian_n who_o be_v far_o absent_v supra_fw-la vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la and_o be_v less_o expert_a in_o the_o roman_a affair_n suppose_a linus_n to_o have_v be_v choose_v next_o after_o s._n peter_n whereas_o clement_n be_v only_o choose_v but_o clement_n as_o other_o think_v yield_v to_o linus_n for_o a_o time_n as_o to_o his_o elder_n howsoever_o that_o be_v whether_o linus_n or_o clement_n practise_v that_o high_a authority_n once_o s._n peter_n chair_n be_v settle_v at_o rome_n not_o without_o the_o special_a providence_n of_o christ_n in_o so_o much_o that_o athanasius_n write_v that_o s._n peter_n and_o paul_n audierunt_fw-la sva_fw-la in_o apologia_fw-la de_fw-la fuga_fw-la sva_fw-la oportere_fw-la se_fw-la romae_fw-la martyrium_fw-la subire_fw-la hear_v that_o they_o must_v suffer_v martyrdom_n at_o rome_n and_o what_o so_o ever_o hear_v he_o mean_v sure_o he_o mean_v it_o of_o a_o hear_n which_o come_v from_o god_n either_o by_o their_o own_o vision_n or_o by_o some_o prophetical_a revelation_n such_o as_o both_o they_o do_v well_o believe_v and_o we_o also_o ought_v to_o credit_n but_o to_o come_v near_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n s._n irenaeus_n speak_v of_o the_o succession_n of_o bisshoppe_n in_o those_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v first_o institute_v call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n maximam_fw-la &_o antiquissimam_fw-la 3._o lib._n 3._o adversus_fw-la herese_n c._n 3._o &_o omnibus_fw-la cognitam_fw-la à _fw-la gloriosissimis_fw-la dvobus_fw-la apostolis_n petro_n &_o paulo_n fundatam_fw-la &_o constitutam_fw-la the_o great_a church_n and_o most_o ancient_a and_o know_v to_o all_o man_n be_v plant_v and_o settle_v by_o two_o most_o gloriouse_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ad_fw-la hanc_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la omnem_fw-la convenire_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la undique_fw-la fideles_fw-la to_o this_o church_n for_o the_o mighty_a principality_n or_o authority_n of_o government_n every_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o faithful_a which_o be_v round_o about_o must_v needs_o come_v or_o agree_v whereas_o then_o every_o church_n have_v a_o certain_a principality_n or_o authority_n of_o government_n commit_v to_o it_o by_o christ_n through_o which_o principality_n it_o may_v preach_v the_o faith_n 3._o tit._n 3._o overcome_v sin_n and_o heresy_n and_o excommunicate_a open_a sinner_n and_o heretic_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v found_v and_o plant_v by_o the_o most_o gloriouse_a apostle_n have_v potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la a_o mighty_a principality_n than_o any_o other_o church_n for_o it_o be_v a_o wilful_a ignorance_n whereas_o ireneus_fw-la speak_v only_a of_o the_o successor_n and_o tradition_n of_o faithful_a church_n 244._o in_o his_o reply_n 244._o for_o m._n jewel_n to_o say_v as_o he_o have_v do_v that_o the_o mighty_a principalty_n here_o mention_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o civil_a dominion_n and_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n as_o though_o ireneus_fw-la have_v speak_v any_o syllable_n in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v found_v and_o institute_v great_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o great_a among_o which_o he_o call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n maximam_fw-la the_o graet_a why_o so_o but_o because_o it_o be_v found_v of_o the_o great_a apostle_n and_o how_o found_v for_o if_o s._n peter_n have_v only_o make_v a_o bishop_n thereof_o as_o he_o do_v of_o diverse_a other_o church_n sure_o thereby_o it_o have_v not_o be_v great_a than_o the_o other_o but_o because_o he_o be_v the_o graet_a of_o the_o apostle_n as_o 14._o as_o hist_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 14._o eusebiê°_n and_o s._n 2._o s._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la galat._n cap._n 2._o hieron_n speak_v leave_v in_o rome_n a_o successor_n in_o his_o own_o primacy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o rock_n and_o a_o chief_a shepherd_n as_o great_a as_o himself_o have_v be_v therefore_o it_o be_v the_o great_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o thence_o come_v the_o primpality_n whereof_o this_o ancient_a father_n speak_v church_n rome_n be_v the_o most_o ancient_a church_n s._n ireneus_fw-la call_v the_o same_o church_n of_o rome_n antiquissiman_n the_o most_o ancient_a church_n how_o so_o be_v not_o jerusalem_fw-la and_o antioch_n before_o it_o yea_o very_o in_o time_n of_o have_v a_o bishop_n and_o of_o êfess_v the_o faith_n but_o not_o in_o the_o êpetual_a honour_n and_o residence_n of_o the_o chief_a bishop_n for_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o he_o be_v the_o root_n the_o fountain_n the_o head_n of_o all_o bishoply_n power_n praelatorum_fw-la de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la and_o from_o hin_n as_o s_n cyprian_n witness_v priestly_a unity_n take_v his_o beginning_n touch_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n his_o successor_n be_v reckon_v as_o in_o deed_n they_o be_v one_o with_o he_o concern_v his_o office_n of_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n cause_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n still_o to_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a and_o the_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o roman_a circuit_n agent_n metropolis_n ad_fw-la solitariam_fw-la vitam_fw-la agent_n as_o also_o athanasius_n do_v name_v it_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o mighty_a principality_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o same_o succession_n of_o peter_n be_v now_o at_o rome_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o ireneus_fw-la the_o same_o church_n be_v still_o the_o great_a and_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n whereunto_o all_o other_o faithful_a man_n ought_v to_o resort_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o mighty_a principality_n or_o preeminence_n thereof_o s._n
threaten_n of_o the_o emperor_n what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o man_n who_o have_v the_o title_n of_o bishop_n when_o have_v it_o be_v hear_v of_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n note_n note_n when_o do_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n take_v his_o authority_n from_o the_o emperor_n or_o when_o at_o any_o time_n be_v this_o acknoulege_v for_o a_o judgement_n there_o have_v be_v very_o many_o synod_n heretofore_o many_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v keep_v but_o neither_o the_o father_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o prince_n nor_o the_o prince_n do_v show_v himself_o curiouse_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n paul_n the_o apostle_n have_v friend_n in_o caesar_n house_n and_o do_v salute_v the_o philippian_n in_o their_o name_n in_o his_o letter_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o take_v they_o as_o his_o fellow_n in_o judgement_n by_o this_o you_o may_v perceive_v that_o no_o emperor_n at_o all_o be_v they_o never_o so_o good_a no_o county_n palatine_n or_o secular_a lord_n be_v they_o never_o so_o much_o faithful_a as_o constans_n be_v and_o those_o of_o the_o emperor_n house_n of_o who_o s._n paul_n speak_v have_v yet_o any_o right_a or_o power_n 4._o philip._n 4._o to_o sit_v precedent_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n otherwise_o then_o to_o keep_v civil_a order_n and_o peace_n but_o only_o those_o to_o who_o god_n have_v commit_v the_o cure_n of_o soul_n in_o so_o much_o that_o athanasius_n dout_v not_o by_o name_n to_o call_v constantius_n the_o foreruner_n of_o antichrist_n because_o he_o be_v a_o secular_a prince_n intermedle_v with_o the_o spiritual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n quid_fw-la igitur_fw-la constantius_n quod_fw-la antichristi_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la antè_fw-la in_o epist_n ubi_fw-la antè_fw-la omisit_fw-la aut_fw-la quomodo_fw-la ille_fw-la in_o adventu_fw-la svo_fw-la non_fw-la repererit_fw-la sibi_fw-la expeditam_fw-la viam_fw-la ad_fw-la dolos_fw-la ab_fw-la isto_fw-la praeparatam_fw-la siquidem_fw-la in_o locum_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la cognitionis_fw-la suum_fw-la palatium_fw-la tribunal_n earum_fw-la caufarum_fw-la constituit_fw-la séque_fw-la earum_fw-la litium_fw-la summum_fw-la principem_fw-la &_o authorem_fw-la facit_fw-la what_o have_v constantius_n then_o omit_v that_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o antichrist_n or_o how_o shall_v not_o antichrist_n when_o he_o come_v find_v a_o fit_n way_n for_o he_o to_o all_o deceit_n prepare_v by_o this_o man_n âª_o for_o in_o steed_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n antichrist_n the_o part_n of_o antichrist_n he_o appoint_v his_o palace_n to_o be_v the_o place_n of_o judgement_n for_o their_o cause_n and_o make_v himself_o the_o chief_a prince_n and_o bearer_n out_o of_o those_o controversy_n antè_fw-la ibiden_v ubi_fw-la antè_fw-la and_o again_o gravia_fw-la sunt_fw-la ista_fw-la &_o plusquam_fw-la gravia_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la istiusmodi_fw-la quae_fw-la congruant_fw-la in_o eum_fw-la qui_fw-la antichristi_fw-la imaginem_fw-la induerit_fw-la quis_fw-la enim_fw-la videns_fw-la eum_fw-la in_o decernendo_fw-la principem_fw-la se_fw-la facere_fw-la episcoporun_n &_o praesidere_fw-la iudicijs_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la non_fw-la meritò_fw-la dicat_fw-la illum_fw-la eam_fw-la ipsam_fw-la abominationem_fw-la desolationis_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la à _fw-la daniele_n praedicta_fw-la est_fw-la nam_fw-la cùm_fw-la circumamictus_fw-la sit_fw-la christianismo_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la these_o thing_n be_v grevous_a and_o more_o than_o grevous_a but_o yet_o they_o be_v such_o as_o do_v well_o agree_v to_o he_o who_o have_v put_v on_o the_o the_o image_n of_o antichrist_n for_o who_o see_v he_o in_o make_v a_o decree_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v prince_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o to_o be_v precedent_n in_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n may_v not_o worthy_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o abomination_n of_o the_o desolation_n which_o be_v foretell_v by_o daniel_n antichrist_n the_o property_n of_o antichrist_n for_o when_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o christianity_n do_v both_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n and_o also_o be_v there_o do_v spoil_v church_n abrogate_v the_o canon_n use_v force_n to_o make_v man_n observe_v and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n who_o will_v at_o any_o time_n dare_v say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o quiet_a time_n to_o the_o christian_n and_o not_o rather_o a_o persecution_n and_o such_o a_o persecution_n as_o neither_o have_v be_v before_o nor_o perchance_o no_o man_n will_v at_o any_o time_n make_v again_o but_o that_o son_n of_o iniquity_n which_o be_v antichrist_n thus_o have_v we_o the_o determinate_a sentence_n of_o athanasius_n of_o athanasius_n i_o say_v the_o most_o notable_a bishop_n that_o ever_o be_v for_o virtue_n and_o learning_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o his_o sentence_n be_v that_o the_o christian_a emperor_n and_o the_o like_a be_v of_o any_o christian_a prince_n who_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v prince_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o make_v a_o decree_n and_o to_o be_v precedent_n in_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o abominable_a desolation_n whereof_o daniel_n prophesy_v can_v any_o plain_a sentence_n be_v wish_v for_o to_o conclude_v my_o present_a purpose_n neither_o be_v this_o doctrine_n only_o mean_v of_o a_o heretical_a emperor_n for_o the_o catholic_a emperor_n constans_n be_v praise_v for_o not_o meddle_v with_o church_n matter_n 4._o philip._n 4._o yea_o s._n paul_n be_v allege_v not_o to_o have_v communicate_v the_o church_n matter_n with_o those_o good_a christian_n of_o caesar_n house_n i_o know_v with_o what_o wrangler_n i_o have_v to_o do_v they_o will_v bring_v example_n to_o show_v that_o some_o emperor_n have_v sit_v in_o general_a counsel_n as_o constantine_n the_o great_a martianus_n and_o some_o other_o but_o i_o answer_v that_o they_o sit_v to_o keep_v good_a order_n and_o to_o preserve_v peace_n and_o quietness_n among_o the_o bishop_n special_o because_o the_o archeheretike_n be_v common_o themselves_o great_a prelate_n as_o be_v the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n or_o of_o alexandria_n or_o of_o constantinople_n who_o if_o the_o emperor_n be_v not_o present_a will_v use_v force_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o dioscorus_n do_v council_n in_o the_o schismatical_a ephesine_n council_n and_o eusebius_n of_o nicomedia_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arrian_n for_o the_o preserve_v they_o of_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a peace_n the_o emperor_n be_v present_a and_o not_o as_o supreme_a judge_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n s._n ambrose_n note_v and_o thinck_v that_o even_o a_o heretical_a emperor_n come_v to_o year_n of_o discreation_n will_v be_v able_a to_o consider_v iâ_n in_o epi._n 32._o what_o manner_n of_o bishop_n m._n horn_n iâ_n qualis_fw-la ille_fw-la episcopus_fw-la sit_fw-la qui_fw-la laicis_fw-la ius_fw-la sacerdotale_fw-la substernit_fw-la what_o manner_n of_o bishop_n he_o be_v who_o lay_v the_o priestly_a right_n under_o the_o lie_v man_n foot_n and_o yet_o by_o geve_v of_o the_o most_o proud_a and_o most_o intolerable_a title_n of_o supreme_a head_n or_o governor_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n to_o lay_v prince_n all_o the_o religion_n use_v now_o in_o england_n whole_o stand_v what_o bishop_n then_o be_v those_o of_o england_n who_o make_v the_o secular_a prince_n their_o head_n put_v the_o priestly_a right_n under_o his_o foot_n s._n augustine_n be_v full_o persuade_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v great_a than_o a_o priest_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n thereupon_o conclude_v that_o moses_n must_v needs_o have_v be_v a_o priest_n for_o say_v he_o nunquid_fw-la maior_fw-la sacerdote_fw-la esse_fw-la poterat_fw-la 98._o august_n in_o psalm_n 98._o can_v he_o be_v great_a than_o a_o priest_n yea_o marry_o say_v m._n horn_n he_o may_v have_v be_v a_o king_n or_o a_o secular_a prince_n but_o s._n augustine_n know_v no_o such_o divinity_n and_o yet_o the_o world_n towards_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n be_v grow_v so_o wise_a that_o these_o man_n have_v find_v now_o that_o every_o emperor_n king_n prince_z or_o duke_n who_o have_v any_o temporal_a state_n of_o his_o own_o be_v great_a even_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n than_o the_o lawful_a successor_n of_o s._n peter_n this_o i_o say_v be_v the_o divinity_n of_o england_n for_o therein_o our_o country_n make_v a_o peculiar_a sect_n of_o his_o own_o wherein_o they_o disagree_v even_o from_o their_o fellow_n caluiniste_n but_o let_v they_o look_v to_o it_o as_o well_o as_o they_o will_v they_o shall_v find_v it_o a_o badge_n of_o antichrist_n as_o athanasius_n have_v plain_o affirm_v and_o when_o the_o day_n of_o trial_n come_v it_o shall_v evidentlie_o appear_v that_o those_o be_v most_o faithful_a subject_n to_o the_o prince_n who_o geve_v he_o his_o due_a place_n of_o honour_n in_o god_n church_n without_o derogation_n to_o that_o heavenly_a power_n of_o bishop_n which_o christ_n himself_o come_v down_o from_o haven_n to_o plant_v and_o who_o he_o have_v set_v even_o over_o the_o king_n themselves_o 21._o joan._n 21._o as_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o their_o fold_n â_o theod._n lib._n
be_v altogether_o in_o question_n between_o us._n how_o then_o can_v that_o be_v a_o mark_n sufficient_a to_o show_v a_o other_o thing_n to_o we_o which_o itself_o be_v not_o sufficient_o know_v of_o we_o all_o which_o reason_n notwithstanding_o the_o confidence_n of_o our_o cause_n be_v such_o that_o i_o may_v grant_v the_o word_n of_o god_n what_o soever_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a mark_n whereby_o god_n church_n may_v be_v know_v and_o then_o i_o say_v that_o every_o way_n god_n word_n stand_v more_o on_o our_o side_n then_o against_o us._n for_o if_o you_o mean_v by_o god_n word_n us._n god_n word_n first_o with_o us._n the_o write_v letter_n of_o the_o old_a and_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o be_v before_o you_o in_o that_o behalf_n because_o you_o have_v no_o assure_a copy_n thereof_o which_o be_v not_o preserve_v by_o the_o former_a christian_n who_o you_o call_v papist_n of_o they_o you_o take_v as_o your_o baptism_n so_o your_o bible_n by_o they_o not_o only_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o also_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v copy_v out_o print_v and_o lay_v up_o in_o library_n and_o in_o other_o place_n whence_o they_o come_v to_o your_o hand_n if_o then_o the_o have_v of_o god_n word_n prove_v a_o true_a church_n that_o be_v the_o more_o true_a church_n which_o have_v it_o first_o special_o see_v we_o come_v not_o by_o it_o privy_o or_o violent_o but_o receive_v it_o even_o at_o the_o apostle_n hand_n for_o after_o that_o day_n wherein_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n deliver_v god_n word_n to_o the_o faithful_a roman_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v always_o keep_v it_o safe_a without_o either_o lose_v or_o corrupt_v it_o again_o we_o believe_v and_o acknowledge_v more_o of_o the_o bible_n than_o you_o do_v us._n more_o of_o god_n word_n with_o us._n by_o the_o book_n of_o toby_n of_o judith_n of_o wisdom_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o of_o the_o maccabee_n all_o which_o we_o account_n for_o god_n own_o word_n according_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o many_o awcient_a 3._o awcient_a aug._n the_o doct_n christia_n lib._n 2._o c._n 8._o gelasius_n in_o synod_n 70._o episco_n council_n florent_fw-la in_o fine-trident_n session_n 3._o father_n and_o counsel_n whereas_o you_o call_v they_o apocrypha_fw-la and_o so_o make_v they_o unable_a to_o decide_v any_o controversy_n about_o religion_n three_o we_o do_v not_o only_o grant_v the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n such_o as_o may_v appear_v uncorrupted_a and_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v god_n word_n but_o we_o also_o acknowledge_v with_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o .8_o the_o justin_n in_o apol._n 2._o ireneus_fw-la li._n 3._o c._n 25._o euseb_n de_fw-fr praeparat_fw-la euang._n li._n 8._o c._n 1._o aug._n ep_v .8_o greek_a translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n word_n more_o copy_n of_o god_n word_n and_o with_o the_o 3._o the_o sessio_fw-la 3._o tridentine_a council_n the_o common_a latin_a translation_n which_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n have_v be_v diligent_o expound_v and_o preserve_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n to_o be_v of_o full_a authority_n where_o as_o you_o geve_v small_a credit_n to_o either_o of_o these_o translation_n except_o by_o your_o judgement_n they_o agree_v with_o the_o first_o hebrew_a and_o greek_a copy_n we_o then_o have_v god_n word_n in_o more_o authentik_a tongue_n and_o copy_n than_o you_o have_v four_o we_o preach_v expound_v interpret_v and_o translate_v god_n word_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o tongue_n word_n better_a use_n of_o god_n word_n better_a than_o you_o because_o we_o do_v these_o thing_n not_o only_o by_o internal_a but_o also_o by_o such_o external_a vocation_n and_o commission_n as_o may_v be_v show_v to_o have_v spring_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o lineal_a and_o ordinary_a succession_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o priest_n whereas_o you_o can_v fetch_v no_o high_a commission_n then_o from_o the_o common_a weal_n which_o never_o receive_v authority_n of_o christ_n to_o make_v priest_n or_o to_o send_v preacher_n and_o yet_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v 10._o rom._n 10._o if_o they_o be_v not_o send_v concern_v that_o you_o read_v god_n word_n to_o the_o people_n at_o you_o church_n service_n time_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n tongue_n of_o god_n word_n in_o vulgar_a tongue_n it_o be_v no_o perfection_n at_o all_o on_o your_o side_n for_o you_o lack_v thereby_o the_o use_n of_o the_o better_a tongue_n as_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a which_o be_v sanctify_v on_o christ_n cross_n 19_o luc._n 23._o joan._n 19_o as_o for_o all_o other_o holy_a use_n so_o most_o special_o for_o to_o serve_v god_n withal_o at_o the_o time_n of_o sacrifice_n wherein_o he_o require_v the_o very_o best_a in_o every_o kind_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o 1_o malac._n 1_o he_o as_o to_o our_o dreadful_a lord_n and_o love_a father_n and_o who_o dout_v but_o that_o a_o learned_a a_o holy_a and_o a_o common_a tongue_n be_v more_o honourable_a than_o a_o barbarouse_n a_o profane_a and_o a_o private_a tongue_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n wherewith_o we_o special_o communicate_v in_o our_o service_n and_o prayer_n the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v account_v strange_a or_o unknowen_a which_o strange_a tongue_n only_o s._n paul_n do_v least_o regard_n than_o the_o common_a tongue_n 14._o 1._o cor._n 14._o which_o be_v alone_o deliver_v to_o the_o very_a first_o christian_n church_n by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n not_o regard_v the_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o vulgar_a tongue_n which_o be_v in_o particular_a province_n of_o the_o same_o country_n church_n the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n for_o of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n use_v in_o the_o east_n church_n and_o of_o the_o latin_a use_v in_o the_o west_n church_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o say_v the_o greek_a or_o the_o east_n church_n the_o latin_a or_o the_o west_n church_n and_o sure_o see_v christ_n be_v upon_o the_o cross_n whence_o the_o pattern_n of_o alâ_n prayer_n and_o oblation_n be_v to_o be_v take_v since_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o offerâ_n say_v cyprian_n be_v the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n whereas_o he_o know_v right_o well_o 3_o li._n 2._o epi._n 3_o that_o the_o common_a people_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o pure_a hebrew_n tongue_n be_v either_o lose_v or_o much_o decay_v in_o common_a speech_n every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o after_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n can_v not_o understand_v he_o 21._o math._n 27._o psal_n 21._o do_v yet_o recite_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o psalm_n my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o in_o hebrew_n and_o do_v not_o either_o by_o and_o by_o or_o at_o all_o interpret_v the_o same_o in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n need_v we_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o after_o his_o example_n we_o may_v do_v the_o like_a in_o those_o tongue_n at_o our_o service_n which_o priest_n and_o clerk_n do_v understand_v though_o the_o common_a people_n do_v not_o understand_v the_o same_o service_n we_o use_v also_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o our_o service_n but_o lest_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o one_o jot_n wherein_o to_o pass_v god_n catholic_a church_n we_o also_o have_v in_o certain_a country_n the_o use_n of_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n service_n as_o in_o dalmatia_n it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n and_o the_o like_a be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o assyria_n and_o in_o aethiopia_n the_o christian_n of_o which_o country_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o supreamacie_n of_o the_o bisshoppe_n of_o rome_n and_o although_o by_o this_o very_a mean_n barbarousnes_n vulgar_a tongue_n cause_n barbarousnes_n those_o country_n be_v become_v the_o more_o barbaous_a for_o thereby_o the_o priest_n and_o preacher_n can_v not_o read_v either_o the_o greek_a or_o the_o latin_a doctor_n yet_o this_o good_a arise_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o their_o loss_n that_o it_o both_o have_v all_o degree_n of_o tongue_n to_o wit_n both_o learned_a and_o vulgar_a in_o her_o prayer_n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o those_o barbarouse_v country_n she_o warn_v the_o other_o more_o civil_a part_n to_o avoid_v that_o mischief_n whereby_o those_o other_o man_n fall_v into_o that_o reproach_n of_o barbarousnes_n moreover_o those_o country_n some_o of_o which_o never_o know_v any_o better_a than_o their_o own_o native_a tongue_n have_v their_o service_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n by_o mere_a force_n and_o necessity_n tongue_n necessity_n force_v those_o country_n to_o use_v vulgar_a tongue_n and_o that_o allow_v by_o the_o good_a dispensation_n and_o toleration_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a without_o breach_n of_o unity_n whereas_o the_o protestant_n have_v once_o have_v
nation_n but_o also_o in_o a_o fââ_n more_o excellent_a kind_n than_o the_o christian_a king_n be_v for_o to_o what_o christian_a king_n do_v christ_n ever_o say_v 20._o joan._n 20._o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o i_o send_v thou_o 16._o math._n 16._o or_z upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v miâ_n church_n 21._o joan._n 21._o or_o do_v thou_o love_v i_o more_o than_o these_o fede_fw-es my_o sheep_n âª_o feed_v my_o lamb_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o king_n above_o priest_n âª_o yea_o above_o the_o high_a pastor_n of_o christ_n flock_n he_o be_v so_o in_o deed_n with_o they_o who_o make_v less_o account_n of_o christ_n heavenly_a institution_n and_o officer_n then_o of_o he_o that_o be_v first_o make_v either_o by_o the_o necessity_n of_o worldly_a calamity_n to_o keep_v away_o a_o great_a evil_a from_o the_o common_a weal_n or_o else_o by_o the_o wanton_a and_o proud_a affection_n of_o earthly_a man_n ambitious_o affect_v tyrannical_a power_n let_v no_o man_n think_v that_o i_o despise_v the_o authority_n of_o king_n god_n forbid_v but_o they_o be_v a_o good_a thing_n bring_v in_o merciful_o sumwhere_o to_o stay_v violent_a injury_n and_o robbery_n and_o other_o where_o permit_v of_o god_n for_o our_o just_a punishment_n 5._o 2._o cor._n 5._o and_o not_o any_o like_a thing_n to_o that_o divine_a order_n of_o pastor_n which_o christ_n ordain_v purposely_o for_o our_o reconciliation_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o for_o the_o avoid_v of_o all_o just_a punishment_n otherwise_o deserve_v it_o be_v a_o king_n as_o saint_n gregory_n 1_o in_o 1._o reg._n lib._n 4._o c._n 1_o note_v who_o divide_v the_o ten_o tribe_n from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o make_v those_o by_o the_o just_a punishment_n of_o god_n to_o be_v idolatour_n who_o so_o greedy_o prefer_v his_o government_n before_o the_o government_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o be_v not_o we_o now_o in_o the_o same_o case_n who_o for_o greediness_n to_o reject_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n be_v come_v to_o prefer_v the_o secular_a and_o temporal_a power_n before_o the_o spiritual_a the_o body_n before_o the_o soul_n and_o earth_n before_o heaven_n 1._o in_o 1._o reg._n lib._n 4._o c._n 1._o nonnulli_fw-la say_v saint_n gregory_n in_o tantum_fw-la dementiae_fw-la malum_fw-la proficiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la commovere_fw-la ipsum_fw-la etiam_fw-la statum_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la culminis_fw-la non_fw-la vereantur_fw-la there_o be_v some_o who_o be_v come_v to_o so_o great_a madness_n that_o they_o be_v not_o a_o fear_v to_o move_v and_o trouble_v even_o the_o state_n itself_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a top_n or_o high_o dignity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o little_a after_o his_o autem_fw-la qui_fw-la vivebant_fw-la sub_fw-la spiritali_fw-la regimine_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la regem_fw-la petere_fw-la quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quà m_fw-la eandem_fw-la spiritalem_fw-la praelationem_fw-la in_o seculaâm_fw-la dominationem_fw-la transfer_v geâre_o for_o those_o that_o do_v live_v under_o the_o spiritual_a government_n to_o require_v a_o king_n âhat_n other_o thing_n be_v it_o then_o to_o go_v aâout_a to_o transfer_v the_o same_o spiritual_a preâteship_n or_o government_n into_o a_o temporal_a dominion_n if_o any_o man_n will_v deep_o weigh_v with_o himself_o that_o god_n choose_v such_o a_o secret_a and_o extraordinary_a way_n to_o ââue_v mankind_n that_o no_o creature_n âould_v worck_v it_o beside_o his_o own_o almighty_a son_n and_o that_o he_o come_v ânto_o the_o world_n be_v so_o far_o from_o work_v his_o purpose_n by_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o whereas_o it_o be_v most_o easy_a for_o he_o to_o have_v make_v many_o king_n and_o prince_n at_o the_o beginning_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o 1._o 1._o cor._n 1._o he_o rather_o choose_v the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o strong_a thing_n and_o wrought_v the_o beginning_n and_o increase_n of_o his_o church_n by_o the_o misbelief_n and_o persecution_n of_o prince_n if_o he_o will_v be_v thinâ_n himself_o how_o far_o the_o poverty_n and_o humility_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ãâã_d from_o the_o pomp_n and_o worldly_a distractiââ_n of_o king_n yea_o though_o they_o be_v christiaâ_n and_o good_a also_o he_o will_v much_o wondââ_n what_o sense_n in_o holy_a matter_n they_o have_v who_o dare_v make_v that_o princely_a state_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o of_o ãâã_d state_n come_v last_o to_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o pomp_n whereof_o be_v most_o contrary_a of_o aââ_n other_o degree_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o and_o yet_o what_o be_v they_o who_o persuade_v this_o matter_n protestant_n the_o inconstancy_n of_o the_o protestant_n very_o those_o who_o have_v just_o reprove_v some_o lewd_a and_o proud_a bishop_n for_o their_o worldly_a pomp_n afterward_o set_v up_o king_n in_o the_o bishop_n place_n yea_o above_o they_o also_o as_o though_o any_o king_n have_v less_o worldly_a pomp_n than_o the_o bishop_n yea_o they_o also_o do_v it_o who_o protest_v they_o will_v believe_v nothing_o but_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n yet_o believe_v king_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n âhich_v they_o not_o only_o can_v not_o find_v in_o âods_n word_n but_o they_o rather_o find_v there_o â_o 1._o reg._n â_o âat_a god_n be_v angry_a when_o the_o government_n of_o the_o high_a priestâas_v âas_z reject_v and_o a_o kingly_a government_n âalled_v for_o moreover_o if_o by_o this_o precept_n the_o âings_n of_o the_o nation_n have_v dominion_n over_o they_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o âmong_v you_o not_o only_o all_o tyrannical_a or_o âordly_a power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n but_o also_o âl_o spiritual_a primacy_n and_o superiority_n be_v forbid_v to_o the_o apostle_n over_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n it_o be_v forbiddenâikewise_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o superior_a in_o any_o one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o part_n accord_v to_o their_o degree_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n whereof_o the_o whole_a be_v therefore_o if_o the_o whole_a militant_a body_n may_v have_v no_o one_o head_n much_o less_o any_o part_n thereof_o may_v have_v a_o head_n if_o then_o no_o apostle_n may_v be_v superior_a or_o primate_n in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o church_n much_o less_o any_o other_o christian_n man_n wââ_n be_v inferior_a to_o a_o apostle_n may_v be_v supreme_a governor_n in_o any_o one_o part_n of_o thâ_n same_o church_n but_o every_o king_n in_o thâ_n behalf_n as_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n be_v inferioââ_n to_o the_o apostle_n for_o he_o be_v both_o tawgââ_fw-mi his_o faith_n of_o they_o 28_o matth._n 28_o and_o baptize_v by_o they_o and_o in_o spiritual_a matter_n he_o must_v be_v guide_v by_o they_o therefore_o see_v the_o king_n may_v not_o be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o any_o part_n of_o christ_n church_n in_o that_o respect_n as_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a man_n if_o yet_o he_o shall_v be_v supreme_a head_n of_o his_o own_o christian_a realm_n by_o any_o mean_a at_o all_o it_o must_v be_v by_o that_o power_n which_o he_o either_o have_v before_o his_o christianity_n or_o beside_o it_o for_o by_o his_o christianity_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o he_o shall_v have_v any_o great_a power_n than_o the_o apostle_n have_v 20_o joan._n 20_o who_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n with_o christ_n authority_n if_o then_o a_o king_n be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n where_o he_o be_v a_o king_n beside_o his_o christianity_n he_o be_v no_o otherwise_o supreme_a governor_n thereof_o than_o any_o ethnik_n prince_n may_v have_v be_v and_o so_o it_o ãâã_d bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n that_o a_o infidel_n king_n hah_o supreme_a power_n to_o visit_v to_o reform_v to_o âorrect_v and_o to_o depose_v any_o bishop_n within_o his_o own_o realm_n the_o which_o argument_n when_o antichrist_n or_o the_o great_a turk_n shall_v make_v unto_o the_o protestant_n âhey_n must_v needs_o yield_v unto_o it_o and_o grant_v âin_v to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o their_o church_n be_v it_o so_o of_o their_o church_n but_o the_o catholics_n shall_v still_o keep_v they_o under_o the_o spiritual_a government_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n which_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o enter_v one_o degree_n far_o in_o this_o matter_n let_v we_o grant_v that_o some_o king_n be_v so_o êfit_a so_o poor_a in_o spirit_n so_o chaste_a so_o liberal_a as_o ever_o any_o bishop_n or_o priest_n be_v require_v to_o be_v in_o god_n law_n do_v what_o thing_n a_o king_n can_v not_o do_v can_v he_o yet_o baptize_v can_v he_o consecrate_v christ_n body_n can_v he_o forgeve_v sin_n can_v he_o preach_v can_v he_o excommunicate_v can_v he_o bless_v the_o people_n can_v he_o judge_v of_o doctrine_n by_o his_o kingly_a authority_n if_o he_o can_v not_o do_v these_o thing_n how_o can_v he_o be_v above_o theâ_n concern_v these_o cause_n who_o have_v receive_v
horn_n will_v not_o say_v so_o what_o be_v it_o they_o which_o he_o can_v do_v may_v he_o put_v he_o in_o prison_n so_o may_v nero_n and_o also_o the_o great_a turk_n by_o this_o mean_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o king_n be_v he_o never_o so_o much_o christen_v have_v yet_o no_o power_n over_o the_o bishops_n soul_n and_o yet_o all_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n towch_v the_o soul_n therefore_o the_o king_n have_v no_o spiritual_a power_n over_o the_o bishop_n at_o all_o 32._o epist_n 32._o si_fw-mi vel_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la seriem_fw-la divinarum_fw-la vel_fw-la vetera_fw-la tempora_fw-la retractemus_fw-la quis_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la abnuat_fw-la in_o causa_fw-la in_fw-la causa_fw-la inquam_fw-la fidei_fw-la episcopos_fw-la solere_fw-la de_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la non_fw-la imperatores_fw-la de_fw-fr episcopis_fw-la iudicare_fw-la if_o we_o call_v to_o mind_n either_o the_o process_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o the_o ancient_a time_n who_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o in_o a_o cause_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o cause_n i_o say_v of_o faith_n bishop_n be_v wont_a to_o judge_v of_o christian_a emperor_n and_o not_o emperor_n of_o bishop_n if_o then_o the_o king_n have_v no_o spiritual_a power_n over_o the_o bishop_n how_o shall_v he_o corect_v or_o depose_v the_o bishop_n according_a to_o any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a process_n of_o judgement_n shall_v he_o cause_v a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v gather_v that_o therein_o he_o may_v depose_v the_o say_v disobedient_a bishop_n put_v case_n the_o synod_n find_v he_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v depose_v or_o else_o will_v not_o depose_v the_o say_a bishop_n how_o can_v the_o king_n come_v to_o exercise_v yet_o any_o spiritual_a power_n upon_o the_o bishop_n you_o will_v say_v he_o shall_v constrain_v the_o synod_n to_o depose_v he_o wherewith_o i_o pray_v you_o by_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n or_o by_o the_o temporal_a not_o by_o the_o spiritual_a for_o it_o be_v never_o commit_v to_o the_o king_n that_o who_o sin_n he_o shall_v retain_v they_o shall_v be_v retain_v if_o then_o he_o shall_v obtain_v his_o purpose_n by_o the_o temporal_a sword_n who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o the_o king_n power_n be_v upon_o his_o temporal_a and_o secular_a jurisdiction_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v have_v though_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o christian_a therefore_o s._n augustine_n find_v many_o âimes_n great_a fault_n with_o the_o donatists_n donatist_n homil._n de_fw-fr pastor_n &_o in_o psalm_n count_v part_n donatist_n because_o they_o appeal_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o emperor_n fall_v even_o constantin_n who_o be_v then_o ãâã_d christian_n prince_n terraenun_fw-la regem_fw-la a_o earthly_a king_n 48_o in_o epist_n 48_o datos_fw-la sibi_fw-la episcopos_fw-la âudices_fw-la apud_fw-la terrenum_fw-la regem_fw-la accusaverunt_fw-la they_o accuse_v the_o bishop_n who_o be_v assign_v to_o be_v their_o judge_n before_o a_o earthly_a king_n for_o albeit_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a yet_o his_o kingly_a power_n be_v earthly_a in_o respect_n of_o that_o heavenly_a power_n which_o christ_n bring_v with_o he_o and_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n what_o do_v i_o stand_v about_o the_o word_n of_o man_n a_o most_o plain_a demonstration_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o high_a priest_n above_o the_o dignity_n of_o faithful_a prince_n even_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n where_o god_n who_o be_v no_o parcial_a judge_n assign_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_v of_o every_o degree_n of_o man_n according_a to_o their_o dignity_n even_o at_o his_o own_o altar_n and_o first_o he_o begin_v with_o the_o high_a priest_n sacerdos_n levitici_fw-la 4_o sacerdos_n say_v si_fw-mi sacerdos_n qui_fw-la unctus_fw-la est_fw-la peccaverit_fw-la delinquere_fw-la faciens_fw-la populum_fw-la offeret_fw-la pro_fw-la peccato_fw-la svo_fw-la vitulum_fw-la if_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v anoint_a shall_v sin_n cause_v the_o people_n to_o sin_n he_o shall_v offer_v a_o calf_n for_o his_o sin_n the_o second_o degree_n be_v not_o the_o prince_n oins_fw-fr turba_n oins_fw-fr but_o the_o whole_a people_n quôd_fw-la si_fw-la omnis_fw-la turba_fw-la filiorum_fw-la israel_n ignoraverint_fw-la offeret_fw-la pro_fw-la peccato_fw-la svo_fw-la vitulum_fw-la if_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v amiss_o by_o ignorance_n it_o shall_v offer_v a_o calf_n for_o his_o sin_n after_o these_o two_o degree_n come_v in_o the_o prince_n place_n 4_o princeps_fw-la levitic_a 4_o si_fw-la peccaverit_fw-la princeps_fw-la offeret_fw-la hostiam_fw-la coram_fw-la domino_fw-la hircum_fw-la etc_n if_o the_o prince_n shall_v sin_n he_o shall_v offer_v a_o he_o gote_v in_o sacrifice_n before_o the_o lord_n behold_v the_o prince_n be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o three_o place_n both_o behind_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o behind_o the_o whole_a multitude_n but_o also_o his_o sacrifice_n be_v of_o less_o value_n and_o of_o a_o base_a condition_n they_o they_o for_o a_o he_o gote_v be_v not_o so_o honourable_a a_o sacrifice_n as_o a_o young_a ox_n or_o a_o calf_n the_o four_o degree_n be_v anima_fw-la anima_fw-la that_o if_o one_o of_o the_o common_a people_n sin_n he_o shall_v offer_v a_o she_o gote_v of_o this_o matter_n philo_n write_v thus_o decebat_fw-la principem_fw-la privato_fw-la homini_fw-la praeferri_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o sacrificio_fw-la victimis_fw-la de_fw-fr victimis_fw-la sicut_fw-la principi_fw-la populum_fw-la quandoquidem_fw-la totum_fw-la est_fw-la sva_fw-la parte_fw-la maius_fw-la pontificem_fw-la verò_fw-la aequiparari_fw-la populo_fw-la in_o expiatione_fw-la impetrandáque_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la venia_fw-la habetur_fw-la tn_z be_v honour_n pontifici_fw-la non_fw-la propter_fw-la ipsum_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la minister_n est_fw-la populi_fw-la publicè_fw-la vota_fw-la faciens_fw-la soluenda_fw-la totius_fw-la gentis_fw-la nomine_fw-la it_o become_v the_o prince_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o a_o private_a man_n even_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n as_o also_o the_o people_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o prince_n because_o the_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o the_o part_n but_o it_o become_v the_o bishop_n to_o be_v make_v equal_a with_o the_o people_n in_o purge_v and_o in_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n howbeit_o that_o honour_n be_v give_fw-ge to_o the_o bishop_n not_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n but_o because_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o people_n make_v his_o prayer_n or_o vow_n public_o to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n mark_v the_o comparison_n the_o prince_n be_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n but_o because_o the_o bishop_n be_v a_o minister_n in_o holy_a matter_n he_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o prince_n 1._o in_o levit._n quaest_n 1._o theodoretus_n also_o write_v thereof_o docet_fw-la quanta_fw-la fit_a sacerdotij_fw-la dignitas_fw-la quam_fw-la universo_fw-la populo_fw-la parem_fw-la facit_fw-la principem_fw-la autem_fw-la qui_fw-la praetergressus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la legem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la non_fw-la vitulum_fw-la sed_fw-la hircum_fw-la aut_fw-la caprun_v anniculum_fw-la offer_n iubet_fw-la tam_fw-la procul_fw-la abest_fw-la à _fw-la sacerdotali_fw-la dignitate_fw-la be_v cvi_fw-la corporeun_fw-mi imperium_fw-la commissum_fw-la est_fw-la god_n do_v teach_v how_o great_a the_o dignity_n of_o priesthood_n be_v which_o dignity_n he_o make_v equal_a with_o the_o whole_a people_n but_o he_o command_v the_o prince_n that_o shall_v transgress_v any_o law_n not_o to_o offer_v a_o calf_n but_o a_o he_o gote_v of_o one_o year_n age_n so_o far_o be_v he_o to_o who_o corporal_a power_n be_v commit_v behind_o the_o priestly_a dignity_n if_o then_o the_o whole_a people_n be_v above_o the_o prince_n as_o who_o be_v able_a to_o choose_v and_o to_o make_v a_o prince_n when_o one_o lack_v and_o yet_o the_o bishop_n be_v equal_a with_o the_o whole_a people_n and_o also_o be_v set_v before_o it_o in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o law_n as_o be_v make_v by_o god_n himself_o and_o not_o able_a to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o people_n because_o they_o can_v not_o consecrate_v a_o bishop_n or_o geve_v he_o spiritual_a power_n what_o impudence_n be_v this_o to_o teach_v that_o a_o prince_n by_o his_o own_o right_a and_o power_n may_v visit_v judge_n correct_v and_o depose_v a_o bishop_n who_o be_v now_o well_o see_v to_o be_v far_o great_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n than_o the_o king_n himself_o let_v this_o much_o suffice_v to_o show_v that_o the_o bishoplie_n or_o pastor_n all_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_a distincted_a from_o the_o tyrannical_a kingdom_n of_o the_o unfaithful_a nation_n but_o also_o from_o the_o moderate_a reign_n of_o what_o so_o ever_o king_n though_o they_o be_v christen_v one_o thing_n now_o be_v brief_o to_o be_v touch_v that_o notwithstanding_o many_o bishop_n be_v evil_a and_o use_v not_o their_o office_n well_o yet_o they_o lose_v it_o not_o thereby_o but_o still_o we_o be_v bind_v by_o christ_n commandment_n to_o do_v the_o thing_n 23_o math._n 23_o not_o which_o they_o do_v but_o which_o they_o say_v
and_o teach_v to_o be_v do_v for_o as_o s._n augustine_n teach_v they_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o unity_n which_o i_o will_v prove_v hereafter_o to_o be_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v constrain_v to_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o verity_n and_o in_o deed_n whereas_o the_o office_n or_o power_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o use_n thereof_o a_o other_o thing_n see_v the_o office_n be_v give_v before_o it_o be_v use_v the_o evil_a use_n of_o it_o which_o ensue_v afterward_o can_v not_o make_v void_a the_o former_a power_n and_o so_o without_o all_o question_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o primacy_n remain_v safe_a and_o sure_a in_o âhe_n apostles_n and_o their_o successor_n although_o they_o practise_v not_o their_o primacy_n ân_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v âarke_n false_a and_o ungodly_a that_o these_o menâeach_n say_v not_o only_o that_o all_o primacy_n ãâã_d forbid_a in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n âut_v also_o that_o they_o lose_v their_o primacy_n who_o cease_v to_o preach_v do_v abuse_v their_o office_n for_o they_o in_o deed_n lose_v the_o merit_n of_o their_o primacy_n but_o not_o the_o self_n primacy_n so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n do_v tolerate_v and_o permit_v they_o in_o their_o place_n otherwise_o caiphas_n be_v so_o evil_a a_o man_n as_o he_o be_v illius_fw-la joan_n 1â_n pontifex_fw-la anni_fw-la illius_fw-la have_v not_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o year_n which_o yet_o the_o gospel_n show_v to_o have_v be_v otherwise_o as_o concern_v which_o some_o be_v wont_a to_o object_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o govern_v as_o a_o pastor_n but_o do_v bear_v a_o soveraintie_n as_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v no_o colour_n of_o truth_n whether_o they_o respect_v the_o manner_n of_o come_v by_o this_o primacy_n or_o the_o order_n iâ_n practise_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o it_o first_o of_o all_o no_o man_n succede_v into_o that_o chair_n by_o any_o right_n of_o inhearitance_n which_o be_v a_o common_a mean_n to_o get_v domition_n among_o worldly_a prince_n secondarilie_o that_o chair_n be_v not_o obtain_v by_o any_o right_n of_o battle_n or_o law_n of_o arm_n neither_o when_o it_o be_v void_a it_o be_v permit_v to_o he_o that_o can_v first_o possess_v it_o but_o it_o be_v give_v only_o by_o election_n beside_o neither_o childd_v nor_o woman_n nor_o infidel_n nor_o catechumen_fw-la or_o learner_n of_o the_o faih_o can_v be_v choose_v to_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o any_o other_o city_n which_o be_v far_o otherwise_o in_o wordly_a kingdom_n 1._o distinct_a 62._o &_o 63._o actor_n 1._o again_o although_o the_o faithful_a people_n and_o the_o prince_n also_o may_v crave_v desire_n and_o require_v a_o pastoure_n or_o bishop_n and_o may_v geve_v their_o consent_n to_o the_o choice_n of_o he_o yet_o the_o right_a to_o choose_v as_o well_o âhe_v bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o all_o other_o pastor_n 28._o act._n 14._o &_o 20._o tit._n 1._o 1._o pet._n 5._o greg._n lib._n 1_o ep_v 55._o &_o 56._o &_o 77._o council_n 8._o c._n 28._o appertain_v only_o to_o ecclesiastical_a person_n as_o who_o duty_n it_o be_v by_o god_n law_n to_o âlace_n and_o make_v priest_n in_o the_o city_n and_o church_n where_o need_n be_v to_o feed_v to_o rule_v âo_o confirm_v or_o to_o displace_v or_o transfer_v and_o general_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o flock_n as_o paulus_n barnabas_n titus_n and_o other_o bishop_n have_v dom_o whereas_o the_o right_a of_o choose_v ãâã_d prince_n where_o he_o be_v make_v by_o election_n may_v as_o well_o or_o much_o more_o apperteine_a to_o the_o common_a people_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o realm_n then_o to_o the_o clergy_n or_o to_o the_o nobility_n alone_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v thus_o choose_v that_o i_o may_v omit_v his_o temporal_a dominion_n which_o be_v but_o a_o accessory_n to_o his_o bishopric_n doubtless_o in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a government_n he_o use_v not_o that_o force_n and_o power_n which_o worldly_a prince_n do_v judaeis_n greg_n lib._n 1_o ep_v 45._o distinct_a 45._o c._n de_fw-fr judaeis_n he_o compel_v no_o man_n by_o violence_n no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o jew_n that_o live_v in_o rome_n to_o baptism_n or_o to_o embrace_v the_o catholic_a faith_n of_o christ_n whereas_o worldly_a prince_n may_v just_o enforce_v the_o people_n who_o they_o have_v under_o they_o both_o to_o obey_v their_o law_n and_o to_o live_v after_o their_o custom_n and_o manner_n moreover_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o bishop_n never_o punish_v any_o of_o they_o with_o the_o material_a sword_n who_o after_o baptism_n forsake_v the_o church_n but_o only_o with_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n and_o to_o they_o also_o he_o come_v very_o slow_o and_o teach_v that_o man_n must_v have_v recourse_n unto_o they_o none_o otherwise_o multi_fw-la 2._o quaest_n 1._o multi_fw-la then_o to_o a_o medicine_n for_o albeit_o he_o both_o plain_o affirm_v that_o heretic_n be_v worthy_a of_o all_o punishment_n yea_o of_o violent_a death_n itself_o and_o that_o according_a to_o god_n word_n yea_o although_o he_o permit_v 13._o deut._n 13._o and_o also_o where_o he_o have_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n procure_v schismatics_n and_o heretic_n to_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n partly_o because_o they_o be_v themselves_o unworthy_a to_o live_v for_o their_o own_o heinous_a fault_n partly_o also_o because_o they_o shall_v not_o infect_v other_o with_o their_o word_n 2._o 2._o tim._n 2._o which_o creep_v and_o fret_v like_o a_o cancre_n âet_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v it_o not_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o other_o as_o a_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o christ_n flock_n but_o he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o other_o as_o a_o temporal_a prince_n and_o lord_n 98._o psal_n 98._o even_o as_o moses_n be_v one_o of_o the_o priest_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v also_o master_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n and_o a_o disposer_n of_o war_n and_o peace_n 31._o exod._n 17._o deut._n 31._o as_o who_o command_v josue_n to_o fight_v against_o amalech_n and_o to_o be_v his_o successor_n in_o the_o civil_a government_n now_o whereas_o the_o protestant_n deny_v moses_n to_o have_v be_v a_o priest_n and_o that_o by_o pretence_n of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n they_o speak_v therein_o against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n and_o against_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o best_a learned_a father_n the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v â8_o psal_n â8_o moses_n &_o aaron_n in_o sacerdotibus_fw-la eius_fw-la moses_n and_o aaron_n be_v among_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v cohanin_n the_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o latin_a sacerdotibus_fw-la which_o be_v to_o say_v those_o who_o make_v sacrifice_n 98._o in_o commentarijs_fw-la psal_n 98._o s._n augustine_n reason_v that_o he_o be_v sacerdos_n a_o sacrificer_n because_o whereas_o he_o be_v in_o all_o authority_n and_o power_n the_o very_o great_a among_o the_o jew_n yet_o he_o can_v not_o be_v mayor_n sacerdote_fw-la great_a than_o he_o that_o have_v power_n to_o sacrifice_v s._n hierom_n be_v i_o be_o sure_a as_o good_a a_o hebrician_n as_o m._n nowell_n in_o his_o book_n against_o jovinian_a jovinian_a lib._n 1._o adversus_fw-la jovinian_a ground_v the_o priesthood_n of_o moses_n upon_o the_o same_o text_n of_o the_o psalm_n make_v a_o difference_n between_o samuel_n the_o levite_n and_o moses_n and_o aaron_n who_o be_v bishop_n or_o high_a priest_n aar_n in_o oratione_fw-la de_fw-fr moyse_n &_o aar_n s._n gregory_n nazianzene_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n yea_o dionysius_n areopagita_n confess_v moses_n to_o have_v ben_fw-mi primum_fw-la legalium_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la mystem_fw-la ac_fw-la ducem_fw-la 5._o de_fw-fr eccles_n hierar_fw-it c._n 5._o the_o first_o cunning_a master_n and_o guide_v of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o law_n qui_fw-la fratrem_fw-la aaron_n ad_fw-la sacerdotale_fw-la munus_fw-la inungens_fw-la sub_fw-la deo_fw-la principe_fw-la sacerdotalem_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la ponâificabiliter_fw-la consummavit_fw-la who_o ânointing_v his_o brother_n aaron_n to_o the_o priestly_a office_n under_o god_n the_o chief_a of_o all_o finish_v the_o priestly_a consecration_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d bisshoplike_a or_o as_o bishop_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v philo_z judeus_n write_v three_o book_n of_o moses_n life_n mosis_fw-la de_fw-fr vita_fw-la mosis_fw-la and_o have_v speak_v before_o of_o his_o authority_n in_o civil_a matter_n speak_v in_o the_o three_o of_o his_o priesthood_n which_o he_o can_v not_o just_o do_v except_o he_o have_v be_v a_o priest_n but_o what_o need_v many_o word_n what_o thing_n do_v in_o all_o the_o world_n belong_v to_o a_o priest_n office_n which_o moses_n do_v not_o 20._o exod._n 20._o he_o take_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o teach_v it_o the_o people_n he_o preach_v to_o they_o he_o consecrate_v the_o high_a bishop_n
whereupon_o christ_n church_n be_v build_v for_o the_o tyme._n against_o which_o doctrine_n m._n jewel_n write_v after_o this_o sort_n jewel_o 221._o in_o the_o 4._o article_n pag._n 221._o for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o seem_v to_o make_v great_a account_n of_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n therefore_o for_o answer_v hereunto_o understand_v thou_o good_a reader_n that_o the_o old_a catholic_a father_n have_v write_v and_o pronounce_v not_o any_o mortal_a man_n as_o peter_n be_v but_o christ_n himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v this_o rock_n saunder_n note_v good_a reader_n that_o we_o dispute_v not_o at_o this_o time_n whether_o christ_n be_v absolute_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o principal_a rock_n 10._o 1._o cor._n 10._o or_o no_o for_o both_o side_n confess_v that_o thing_n but_o whether_o s._n peter_n for_o his_o part_n also_o be_v not_o this_o rock_n whereof_o christ_n at_o this_o time_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n m._n jewel_n deni_v s._n peter_n to_o be_v this_o rock_n i_o will_v prove_v god_n will_v direct_o against_o m._n jewel_n word_n that_o the_o old_a catholic_a father_n have_v write_v and_o pronounce_v not_o only_a christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o also_o even_o such_o a_o mortal_a man_n as_o s._n peter_n be_v to_o be_v this_o rock_n whereof_o christ_n at_o that_o time_n speak_v and_o that_o as_o well_o by_o their_o plain_a word_n as_o by_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o own_o word_n yea_o also_o by_o the_o place_n which_o m._n jewel_n allege_v for_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n concilior_fw-la in_o decree_n epist_n tomo_fw-la 1._o concilior_fw-la first_o omit_v to_o speak_v of_o anacletus_fw-la of_o pius_fw-la of_o fabianus_n and_o of_o other_o holy_a bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o testimony_n be_v yet_o most_o unjust_o reject_v of_o âhe_n protestant_n see_v they_o suffer_v death_n and_o not_o only_o with_o their_o word_n but_o also_o with_o their_o blood_n bare_a witness_n to_o christ_n name_n i_o will_v only_o bring_v forth_o such_o authority_n as_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o âeiect_v tertullian_n say_v haret_fw-la de_fw-fr praescriptioni_fw-la adversus_fw-la haret_fw-la latuit_fw-la aliquid_fw-la petrum_fw-la aedificandae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la petram_fw-la âdictum_fw-la be_v any_o thing_n privy_a from_o peter_n be_v call_v the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v build_v here_o be_v peter_n affirm_v to_o have_v be_v call_v petra_n the_o rock_n church_n the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n intend_v to_o build_v so_o that_o the_o build_n by_o tertullians_n judgement_n be_v yet_o to_o come_v very_o because_o it_o be_v perfect_o build_v upon_o s._n peter_n when_o christ_n say_v unto_o he_o above_o all_o other_o his_fw-la joan._n 21._o plus_fw-fr his_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n now_o good_a reader_n confer_v this_o place_n of_o tertullian_n with_o that_o which_o m._n jewel_n affirm_v and_o see_v âª_o what_o shall_v i_o call_v it_o i_o say_v no_o more_o but_o see_v that_o m._n jewel_n wââ_n oversee_v and_o trust_v he_o no_o more_o mundi_fw-la de_fw-fr consummate_a mundi_fw-la hippolytus_n the_o martyr_n say_v princeps_fw-la petrus_n fidei_fw-la petra_fw-la peter_n be_v the_o chief_a the_o rock_n of_o faith_n exod._n homil._n 5._o in_o exod._n origenes_n call_v s._n peter_n magnum_fw-la illud_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la &_o petram_fw-la solidissimam_fw-la super_fw-la quam_fw-la christus_fw-la fundavit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la that_o great_a foundation_n and_o most_o massy_a and_o sound_a rock_n whereupon_o christ_n have_v build_v the_o church_n 9_o lib._n 1._o epi._n 3._o &_o lib._n 4_o epist_n 9_o s._n cyprian_n agree_v with_o they_o say_v super_fw-la petrum_fw-la aedificata_fw-la à _fw-la domino_fw-la fuerat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la the_o church_n be_v build_v of_o our_o lord_n upon_o peter_n christ_n our_o lord_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n saint_n cyprian_n say_v our_o lord_n have_v build_v his_o church_n upon_o peter_n therefore_o s._n cyprian_n understand_v peter_n to_o be_v this_o rock_n and_o consequent_o some_o excellent_a old_a catholic_a father_n understode_v a_o mortal_a man_n as_o s._n peter_n be_v to_o be_v this_o rock_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v s._n hilary_n write_v trinit_fw-la libr._n 6._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la petrus_n aediâcationi_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la subiacet_fw-la peter_n âeth_v under_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n to_o lie_v under_o the_o building_n be_v to_o âe_v the_o foundation_n which_o foundation_n âither_o be_v a_o rock_n or_o in_o the_o steed_n of_o ãâã_d rock_n to_o the_o house_n which_o be_v build_v upâon_n it_o likewise_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o cry_v 1â_n in_o cap._n math._n 1â_n ãâã_d in_o nuncupatione_fw-la novi_fw-la nomiâis_fw-la soelix_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la dignáque_fw-la aedificatione_n illius_fw-la peâra_fw-la quae_fw-la infernas_fw-la leges_fw-la dissolueâet_fw-la o_o happy_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o have_v the_o new_a name_n pronounce_v of_o thou_o and_z o_o rock_n worthy_a of_o the_o build_n of_o that_o church_n which_o shall_v undo_v the_o law_n of_o hell_n the_o new_a name_n be_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n which_o be_v new_o give_v to_o simon_n that_o he_o may_v be_v thereby_o the_o happy_a foundation_n and_o worthy_a rock_n whereupon_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v 68_o sermone_fw-la 68_o s._n ambrose_n recite_v the_o authority_n of_o these_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n thereupon_o say_v si_fw-la ergo_fw-la petrus_n petra_fw-la est_fw-la super_fw-la quam_fw-la aedificatur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la recte_fw-la prius_fw-la pedes_fw-la sanat_fw-la ut_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la fidei_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la continet_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o in_fw-la homine_fw-la membrorum_fw-la fundamenta_fw-la confirmet_fw-la see_v then_o peter_n be_v the_o rock_n whereupon_o the_o church_n be_v build_v he_o do_v well_o to_o heal_v first_o the_o foot_n that_o even_o as_o he_o do_v contain_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n so_o likewise_o in_o the_o man_n he_o may_v confirm_v the_o foundation_n of_o his_o member_n poenit_fw-la in_o concio_fw-la de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la s._n basil_n speak_v of_o this_o very_a confession_n of_o s._n peter_n write_v thus_o petrus_n petra_fw-la est_fw-la propter_fw-la christum_n petram_fw-la largitur_fw-la enim_fw-la jesus_n svas_fw-la dignitates_fw-la petra_fw-la est_fw-la petram_fw-la facit_fw-la peter_n be_v a_o rock_n through_o christ_n the_o rock_n for_o jesus_n geve_v to_o peter_n his_o own_o dignity_n he_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o make_v a_o other_o to_o be_v the_o rock_n what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o plain_o against_o m._n jewel_n not_o only_o christ_n be_v the_o rock_n but_o he_o make_v peter_n also_o a_o rock_n s._n hierom_n show_v by_o a_o example_n 1._o hieron_n in_o matt._n 16._o joan._n 1._o that_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o light_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n 5._o matt._n 5._o and_o as_o they_o have_v of_o our_o lord_n other_o name_n even_o so_o to_o simon_n who_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o rock_n he_o give_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n and_o consequent_o he_o say_v that_o according_a to_o the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o rock_n it_o be_v well_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o super_fw-la te_fw-la upon_o thou_o aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la super_fw-la te_fw-la i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n upon_o thou_o behold_v the_o church_n be_v promise_v to_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o mortal_a man_n as_o peter_n be_v s._n chrysostom_n write_v thus_o 27._o exit_fw-la var._n in_o math._n locis_fw-la hom_n 27._o princeps_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la petrus_n super_fw-la quem_fw-la christus_fw-la fundavit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la verè_fw-la immobilis_fw-la petra_fw-la &_o firma_fw-la confessio_fw-la peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n upon_o who_o christ_n have_v found_v the_o church_n a_o very_a immovable_a rock_n and_o a_o strong_a confession_n note_n note_n it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v note_v that_o s._n chrysostome_n call_v s._n peter_n the_o confession_n whereby_o we_o may_v understande_v when_o s._n chrysostome_n say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o faith_n of_o confession_n he_o mean_v upon_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n confess_v or_o make_v the_o confession_n so_o that_o not_o every_o man_n but_o peter_n confession_n be_v this_o rock_n whereupon_o the_o church_n be_v promise_v to_o be_v build_v epiphanius_n doubt_v not_o to_o write_v of_o s._n peter_n in_o this_o wise_a anchoratu_fw-la in_o anchoratu_fw-la ipse_fw-la dominus_fw-la constituit_fw-la eum_fw-la primum_fw-la apostolorun_n petram_fw-la firman_n super_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la del_fw-it aedificata_fw-la est_fw-la &_o porte_fw-fr inferorum_fw-la non_fw-la valebunt_fw-la adversus_fw-la illam_fw-la porte_fw-fr auten_fw-mi inferorum_fw-la sunt_fw-la haereses_fw-la &_o haeresiarchae_fw-la juxta_fw-la oemm_n enim_fw-la modum_fw-la
saunder_n it_o be_v but_o reason_n true_o that_o peter_n be_v build_v upon_o christ_n and_o that_o we_o also_o believe_v but_o for_o asmuch_o as_o we_o be_v in_o the_o metaphor_n of_o building_n do_v not_o reason_n teach_v we_o that_o when_o we_o have_v lay_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o a_o house_n a_o mighty_a great_a stone_n that_o the_o next_o which_o we_o lie_v upon_o it_o shall_v be_v also_o a_o very_a great_a one_o yea_o after_o the_o low_a the_o very_o great_a of_o all_o do_v any_o wise_a man_n have_v lay_v in_o the_o foundation_n a_o stone_n of_o twenty_o cubit_n place_n next_o upon_o it_o a_o stone_n of_o one_o or_o two_o ynche_n if_o not_o so_o by_o all_o proportion_n the_o second_o stone_n shall_v be_v the_o great_a that_o can_v be_v get_v next_o unto_o the_o first_o 7._o dan._n 7._o christ_n be_v so_o great_a a_o stone_n that_o he_o have_v fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n i_o ask_v of_o m._n jewel_n who_o shall_v be_v next_o unto_o christ_n mie_a verdict_n be_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n which_o be_v daily_o a_o build_n on_o the_o earth_n s._n peter_n be_v the_o next_o stone_n because_o god_n who_o geve_v his_o benefit_n most_o free_o voutsafe_v first_o of_o all_o man_n to_o grant_v s._n peter_n this_o grace_n 21._o joan._n 21._o to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o his_o flock_n 10_o matth._n 10_o and_o the_o porter_n of_o his_o kingdom_n next_o unto_o himself_o saint_n peter_n be_v the_o next_o stone_n in_o building_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o christ_n be_v therefore_o a_o rock_n because_o he_o be_v build_v immediate_o upon_o the_o rock_n for_o in_o a_o body_n compact_v together_o every_o thing_n partake_v most_o intierlie_a the_o nature_n of_o that_o whereunto_o it_o be_v next_o join_v note_v good_a reader_n that_o we_o speak_v ãâã_d the_o whole_a church_n which_o have_v ãâã_d the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n but_o only_o of_o that_o portion_n which_o live_v on_o the_o earth_n for_o the_o time_n for_o thereof_o only_a peter_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v the_o rock_n whereas_o christ_n be_v the_o rock_n of_o rock_n which_o uphould_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o the_o rock_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n thereof_o jewel_o all_o these_o father_n be_v plain_a saunder_n against_o you_o for_o as_o none_o of_o they_o deny_v peter_n to_o be_v this_o rock_n which_o thing_n you_o have_v deny_v so_o many_o affirm_v that_o the_o confession_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o faith_n be_v the_o rock_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v and_o yet_o see_v the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v no_o great_a than_o himself_o be_v if_o his_o faith_n be_v the_o rock_n himself_o be_v also_o the_o rock_n jewel_o matth._n in_o 16._o matth._n none_o be_v so_o plain_a as_o origen_n he_o be_v the_o rock_n whosoever_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n saunder_n chap._n in_o the_o 3._o chap._n this_o kind_n of_o sense_n be_v not_o literal_a as_o i_o show_v before_o but_o admit_v it_o be_v literal_a yet_o see_v s._n peter_n be_v the_o disciple_n yea_o the_o chef_fw-fr disciple_n of_o christ_n as_o s._n matthew_n say_v primus_fw-la simon_n qui_fw-la dicitur_fw-la petrus_n simon_n be_v the_o first_o 10_o matth._n 10_o who_o be_v call_v peter_n sure_o m._n jewel_n by_o your_o confession_n peter_n next_o unto_o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a rock_n a_o man_n will_v think_v you_o be_v frantic_a when_o you_o deny_v a_o mortal_a man_n as_o peter_n be_v to_o be_v this_o rock_n yet_o afterward_o prove_v that_o every_o mortal_a man_n who_o be_v christ_n disciple_n be_v the_o rock_n jewel_o upon_o such_o a_o rock_n all_o ecclesiastical_a learning_n be_v build_v as_o origen_n say_v saunder_n but_o s._n peter_n be_v such_o a_o rock_n therefore_o upon_o s._n peter_n all_o ecclesiastical_a learning_n be_v build_v who_o can_v wissh_v such_o a_o adversary_n as_o m._n jewel_n be_v who_o prove_v altogether_o against_o himself_o jewel_o if_o thou_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v build_v only_o upon_o peter_n what_o then_o will_v thou_o say_v of_o john_n the_o son_n of_o the_o thunder_n 1â_n metth._n 1â_n and_o of_o every_o of_o the_o apostle_n say_v origin_n saunder_n master_n jewel_n leave_v out_o in_o his_o english_a this_o word_n illum_fw-la petrum_fw-la out_o a_o word_n leave_v out_o if_o thou_o think_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v only_o build_v upon_o that_o peter_n to_o wit_n that_o rock_n of_o stone_n what_o will_v thou_o say_v of_o john_n and_o of_o every_o of_o the_o apostle_n origen_n say_v peter_n be_v a_o rock_n which_o thing_n master_n jewel_n deni_v but_o he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o rock_n and_o that_o we_o grant_v but_o master_n jewel_n say_v no_o mortal_a man_n but_o christ_n himself_o be_v this_o rock_n therefore_o i_o ask_v he_o what_o he_o say_v of_o s._n john_n and_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o saint_n john_n a_o mortal_a man_n wo_n to_o this_o cause_n m._n jewel_n whereof_o you_o be_v become_v the_o patron_n god_n keep_v i_o from_o such_o a_o advocate_n who_o shall_v need_v none_o other_o evidence_n against_o he_o to_o less_o my_o cause_n withal_o beside_o his_o own_o word_n you_o say_v the_o old_a father_n have_v write_v not_o any_o mortal_a man_n but_o christ_n himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v this_o rock_n nequam_fw-la exit_fw-la ore_fw-la tuo_fw-la te_fw-la iudico_fw-la serve_v nequam_fw-la but_o s._n john_n and_o s._n peter_n and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v here_o this_o rock_n whereof_o be_v name_v in_o the_o sixteen_o of_o s._n matthew_n we_o dispute_v and_o yet_o no_o apostle_n be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n therefore_o some_o mortal_a man_n be_v this_o rock_n beside_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n jewel_o shall_v we_o dare_v to_o say_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v only_o against_o peter_n or_o be_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n give_v only_o unto_o peter_n say_v origen_n saunder_n it_o be_v inowgh_a that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v least_o of_o all_o prevail_a against_o peter_n and_o he_o have_v chefelie_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n for_o as_o s._n peter_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n first_o confess_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 124._o august_n in_o joan._n tractat_fw-la 124._o so_o all_o that_o confess_v after_o he_o and_o by_o he_o for_o all_o be_v in_o he_o as_o in_o their_o primate_n and_o chief_a pastor_n enjoy_v both_o his_o confession_n and_o his_o reward_n that_o as_o he_o be_v set_v over_o all_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o so_o other_o for_o their_o part_n be_v call_v into_o part_n of_o the_o care_n to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n m._n jewel_n shall_v have_v prove_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o the_o rock_n whereupon_o christ_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n but_o he_o have_v not_o do_v it_o neither_o be_v he_o able_a to_o bring_v any_o one_o syllable_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o any_o one_o say_v out_o of_o the_o doctor_n which_o deny_v peter_n to_o be_v this_o rock_n but_o he_o only_o have_v minister_v matter_n to_o i_o for_o the_o prouf_fw-fr of_o the_o contrary_a assertion_n the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o other_o which_o follow_v the_o viii_n chap._n hitherto_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v by_o most_o evident_a reason_n of_o god_n promise_n of_o the_o circumstance_n and_o of_o the_o conference_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o special_a reason_n which_o move_v they_o to_o think_v and_o write_v so_o and_o last_o of_o all_o by_o the_o refutation_n of_o m._n jewel_n own_o word_n that_o saint_n peter_n with_o such_o quality_n and_o condition_n as_o christ_n endue_v he_o withal_o be_v this_o rock_n whereupon_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o because_o look_v what_o kind_n of_o build_v the_o church_n be_v once_o êmise_v to_o have_v that_o must_v still_o continue_v see_v the_o church_n do_v still_o tarry_v the_o same_o house_n of_o god_n there_o must_v be_v always_o some_o one_o mortal_a man_n like_o unto_o peter_n who_o be_v first_o make_v a_o rock_n by_o election_n may_v afterward_o by_o god_n revelation_n still_o confess_v the_o faith_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o so_o ever_o he_o be_v demand_v or_o consult_v what_o be_v to_o be_v think_v and_o beleve_v in_o matter_n belong_v to_o christian_a religion_n if_o then_o there_o must_v be_v some_o one_o such_o rock_n upon_o who_o authority_n the_o faithful_a man_n may_v ground_n themselves_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v any_o other_o man_n beside_o the_o bisshoppe_n of_o rome_n first_o because_o he_o
disease_n 18._o matth._n 18._o and_o to_o cast_v out_o devil_n and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o whatsoever_o thing_n you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o the_o earth_n they_o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n also_o and_o whatsoever_o thing_n you_o shall_v loose_v upon_o the_o earth_n they_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n also_o and_o again_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o say_v 20._o joan._n 20._o as_o my_o father_n have_v send_v i_o and_o i_o send_v you_o âª_o take_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o go_v into_o the_o whole_a world_n 16._o marc._n 16._o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n teach_v all_o nation_n 28_o matth._n 28_o and_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o after_o christ_n ascension_n s._n mathias_n 1._o actor_n 1._o and_o after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n s._n paul_n be_v take_v into_o that_o holy_a office_n and_o vocation_n 1_o galat._n 1_o so_o that_o by_o their_o commission_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v all_o send_v into_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o singular_a authority_n now_o that_o beside_o this_o apostolic_a function_n 32._o eusebius_n hist_o lib._n 2._o c._n 1._o &_o lib._n 3._o c._n 22._o &_o 32._o they_o have_v also_o power_n to_o be_v resident_a upon_o some_o one_o particular_a cure_n and_o flock_n the_o example_n of_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n do_v declare_v who_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o writer_n to_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la yea_o simon_n also_o a_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v read_v to_o have_v succeed_v after_o s._n james_n in_o the_o same_o chair_n and_o church_n s._n peter_n likewise_o have_v sit_v at_o antioch_n seven_o year_n catalo_n hieron_n in_o catalo_n afterward_o transfer_v his_o seat_n unto_o rome_n 22._o euseb_n li._n 3_o c._n 22._o more_o over_o s._n peter_n make_v euodius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n after_o his_o departure_n thence_o and_o send_v his_o disciple_n s._n marck_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n at_o alexandria_n 1._o greg_n li._n 6._o epist_n 37._o tit._n 1._o s._n paul_n appoint_v titus_n bishop_n in_o candia_n and_o timotheus_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o like_a be_v do_v by_o other_o apostle_n in_o other_o country_n 4._o 1._o tim._n 4._o therefore_o the_o apostle_n have_v also_o the_o power_n to_o be_v and_o to_o make_v bishop_n 1._o actor_n 1._o in_o so_o much_o that_o when_o s._n peter_n deprive_v judas_n of_o his_o chair_n he_o show_v the_o prophecy_n to_o be_v fulfil_v council_n psal_n 108._o ennodius_n in_o 2._o tom._n council_n episcopatum_fw-la eius_fw-la accipiat_fw-la alter_fw-la let_v a_o other_o man_n take_v his_o bishopric_n or_o his_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n for_o although_o every_o bishop_n be_v not_o a_o apostle_n yet_o every_o of_o christ_n apostle_n be_v or_o may_v be_v a_o bishop_n and_o because_o the_o bishoply_n power_n be_v most_o certain_o contain_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o apostolic_a office_n the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o apostle_n come_v also_o to_o signify_v a_o bishop_n in_o the_o primative_a church_n as_o theodoretus_n have_v well_o declare_v tim._n in_o cap._n 3.1_o ad_fw-la tim._n eosden_n olim_fw-la vocabant_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la &_o episcopos_fw-la eos_n aunt_n qui_fw-la nunc_fw-la vocantur_fw-la episcopi_n nominabant_fw-la apostolos_fw-la êcedente_fw-la auten_fw-mi tempore_fw-la nomen_fw-la quidem_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la reliquerunt_fw-la ijs_fw-la qui_fw-la verè_fw-la erant_fw-la apostoli_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la auten_fw-mi appellationem_fw-la imposuerunt_fw-la ijs_fw-la qui_fw-la olim_fw-la appellabantur_fw-la apostoli_fw-la â_o philip._n â_o ita_fw-la philippensium_fw-la apostolus_fw-la erat_fw-la epaphroditus_n vestrum_fw-la inquit_fw-la apostolun_n &_o adiutorem_fw-la necessitatis_fw-la meae_fw-la ita_fw-la cretensium_n titê°_n &_o asianorun_v timotheê°_n 15_o actor_n 15_o ita_fw-la ab_fw-la hierosolymis_fw-la ijs_fw-la ê_n erant_fw-la antiochiae_fw-la scripserunt_fw-la apost_n &_o presbyteri_fw-la in_o the_o old_a time_n they_o call_v the_o same_o man_n both_o priest_n and_o bishop_n but_o those_o which_o be_v now_o call_v bishop_n they_o do_v call_v apostle_n and_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o leave_v the_o name_n of_o apostleship_n to_o those_o that_o be_v true_o and_o in_o deed_n apostles_n and_o call_v they_o bishop_n which_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v call_v apostle_n so_o be_v epaphroditus_n the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n 2._o philip._n 2._o your_o apostle_n say_v s._n paul_n and_o the_o helper_n of_o my_o necessity_n so_o be_v titus_n the_o apostle_n of_o those_o of_o candie_n and_o timotheus_n of_o those_o of_o asia_n 15._o act._n 15._o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n and_o priest_n write_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o those_o that_o be_v at_o antioch_n see_v then_o the_o name_n of_o a_o apostle_n do_v contain_v both_o proper_o that_o extraordinary_a honour_n which_o the_o true_a apostle_n only_o have_v and_o also_o that_o ordinary_a power_n which_o all_o bishop_n than_o have_v and_o always_o shall_v have_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o understand_v that_o when_o s._n hierome_n write_v concern_v bishop_n euagrium_n ad_fw-la euagrium_n omnes_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la successores_fw-la sunt_fw-la all_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o when_o 44._o in_o psal_n 44._o augustine_n say_v pro_fw-la apostolis_n constituti_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopi_n bishop_n be_v make_v in_o steed_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o both_o and_o all_o the_o other_o father_n say_v the_o like_a do_v mean_a that_o bishop_n do_v succeed_v the_o apostle_n not_o in_o the_o apostleship_n but_o in_o their_o bisshoplie_n authority_n which_o also_o s._n ireneus_fw-la call_v 3._o lib._n 3._o c._n 3._o suum_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la magisterij_fw-la locum_fw-la their_o own_o place_n of_o teach_v or_o of_o govern_v if_o any_o man_n ask_v why_o the_o bisshoplie_n authority_n be_v so_o namely_o distincted_a hy_z i_n from_o the_o apostleship_n since_o it_o be_v contain_v therein_o as_o the_o lesser_a dignity_n within_o the_o great_a i_o answer_v objection_n the_o put_v away_o of_o a_o objection_n that_o it_o be_v nedeful_a so_o to_o do_v because_o when_o the_o apostleship_n cease_v the_o other_o bisshoply_n authority_n continue_v still_o and_o yet_o if_o the_o bisshoplie_n authority_n have_v only_o depend_v upon_o the_o apostolic_a function_n it_o must_v needs_o have_v seize_v with_o it_o also_o for_o when_o the_o whole_a apostleship_n be_v end_v no_o part_n thereof_o can_v remain_v in_o his_o force_n except_o it_o have_v a_o other_o ground_n to_o stand_v in_o beside_o thapostleship_n as_o the_o bishoply_n power_n have_v 64._o cyril_n lib._n 12._o c._n 64._o this_o be_v so_o when_o we_o read_v that_o peter_n be_v head_n prince_n chief_a first_o and_o captain_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o may_v according_a to_o the_o former_a distinction_n either_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o be_v both_o their_o head_n according_a to_o their_o excellent_a apostolic_a dignity_n and_o also_o according_a to_o their_o inferior_a authority_n of_o be_v particular_a bishop_n or_o else_o according_a to_o the_o only_a one_o consideration_n of_o the_o twain_o how_o far_o s._n peter_n do_v either_o excel_v or_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o apostolic_a office_n wherein_o diverse_a objection_n be_v answer_v which_o seem_v to_o make_v against_o s._n peter_n supremacy_n the_o xi_o chap._n be_v it_o not_o that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n do_v force_n i_o to_o entreat_v of_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v think_v it_o a_o sin_n to_o enter_v into_o so_o curiouse_a a_o question_n for_o what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v now_o with_o the_o apostle_n aequalitie_n or_o inequality_n whereas_o it_o shall_v have_v suffice_v we_o to_o follow_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o we_o find_v practise_v in_o our_o time_n not_o search_v out_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v perhaps_o above_o our_o capacity_n but_o see_v the_o aequalitie_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o why_o this_o question_n be_v treat_v of_o be_v now_o pretend_a against_o the_o universal_a faith_n which_o have_v always_o give_fw-ge the_o primacy_n to_o peter_n seat_n it_o behove_v to_o answer_v thereunto_o trust_v that_o god_n will_v bear_v with_o the_o humble_a defendant_n how_o so_o ever_o the_o wantonness_n of_o the_o other_o side_n stand_v in_o great_a danger_n to_o be_v punish_v for_o their_o schism_n troublesomnesse_n and_o pride_n i_o take_v it_o for_o a_o thing_n agree_v upon_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n according_o as_o s._n matthew_n recite_v the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n say_v primus_fw-la simon_n qui_fw-la dicitur_fw-la petrus_n 10._o matt._n 10._o the_o first_o be_v simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n if_o than_o none_o other_o apostle_n be_v first_o beside_z peter_z and_o all_o that_o which_o be_v not_o first_o must_v needs_o be_v somewhat_o bebinde_v that_o which_o be_v first_o doubtless_o none_o other_o apostle_n can_v be_v
jam_fw-la cùm_fw-la ista_fw-la scriberem_fw-la 94._o epist_n 94._o cognoveramus_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la carthaginensi_fw-la adversus_fw-la eos_fw-la episcopalis_fw-la concilij_fw-la conditum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la decretum_fw-la per_fw-la epistolam_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o venerabili_fw-la papae_fw-la innocentio_n dirigendum_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la de_fw-la concilio_n numidiae_fw-la ad_fw-la eandem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la sedem_fw-la iam_fw-la similiter_fw-la scripseramus_fw-la now_o while_o i_o write_v these_o thing_n we_o understode_v a_o decree_n to_o have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n by_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v by_o a_o epistle_n unto_o the_o holy_a and_o reverend_a pope_n innocentius_n and_o we_o likewise_o have_v write_v from_o the_o council_n of_o numidia_n to_o the_o same_o apostolic_a see_n it_o be_v then_o evident_a that_o these_o two_o counsel_n send_v their_o decree_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o also_o all_o other_o counsel_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o most_o ancient_a tradition_n and_o that_o as_o well_o because_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v assure_v not_o to_o err_v as_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v pray_v for_o by_o christ_n himself_o as_o also_o to_o the_o intent_n all_o church_n may_v receive_v the_o soon_o that_o decree_n which_o be_v derive_v to_o they_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o own_o head_n under_o christ_n and_o of_o their_o chief_a shepherd_n and_o again_o because_o the_o heretic_n and_o they_a follower_n may_v the_o soon_o be_v either_o reconcile_a or_o keep_v down_o when_o it_o be_v once_o know_v that_o the_o high_a court_n in_o earth_n have_v condemn_v their_o opinion_n whereupon_o the_o father_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n say_v 92._o epist_n 92._o arbitramus_n adiwante_fw-la misericordia_fw-la domini_fw-la dei_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la qui_fw-la te_fw-la &_o regere_fw-la consulentem_fw-la &_o orantem_fw-la exaudire_fw-la dignatur_fw-la auctoritati_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la tuus_fw-la de_fw-la sanctarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la authoritate_fw-la depromptae_fw-la facilius_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la tam_fw-la perversa_fw-la &_o perniciosa_fw-la sentiunt_fw-la esse_fw-la cessuros_fw-la we_o think_v these_o man_n who_o have_v so_o evil_a and_o froward_a opinion_n scripture_n the_o pope_n authority_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n will_v the_o soon_o yield_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o holiness_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o voutsafe_v both_o to_o rule_v you_o while_o you_o consult_v and_o to_o hear_v you_o when_o you_o pray_v two_o thing_n be_v special_o to_o be_v note_v in_o these_o word_n one_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n innocentius_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n very_o because_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o succede_v s._n peter_n be_v the_o high_a shepherd_n who_o voice_n all_o the_o faithful_a be_v bind_v to_o hear_v the_o other_o point_n be_v in_o that_o these_o father_n affirm_v that_o christ_n rule_v the_o pope_n at_o his_o consultation_n allude_v therein_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v pray_v for_o 22._o luc._n 22._o to_o send_v all_o his_o successor_n may_v not_o err_v in_o consult_v about_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o which_o epistle_n pope_n innocentius_n make_v answer_v praise_v they_o because_o in_o doubtful_a matter_n they_o ask_v he_o what_o sentence_n or_o judgement_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v 93._o ep._n 93._o antiquae_fw-la scilicet_fw-la regulae_fw-la formam_fw-la secuti_fw-la quam_fw-la toto_fw-la semper_fw-la ab_fw-la orbe_fw-la mecum_fw-la nostis_fw-la esse_fw-la seruatam_fw-la you_o follow_v say_v innocentius_n the_o pattern_n of_o the_o ancient_a rule_n which_o you_o know_v as_o well_o as_o i_o well_o note_v well_o to_o have_v be_v always_o keep_v of_o the_o whole_a world_n mark_v that_o innocentius_n dout_v not_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o milivite_fw-la among_o who_o saint_n augustine_n be_v do_v know_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n always_o use_v to_o refer_v doubtful_a matter_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o that_o as_o it_o follow_v praesertim_fw-la quoties_fw-la fidei_fw-la ratio_fw-la ventilatur_fw-la special_o so_o oft_o as_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v discuss_v if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o deed_n write_v so_o but_o that_o he_o say_v not_o true_a let_v he_o consider_v that_o saint_n augustine_n do_v also_o acknowledge_v and_o praise_v the_o pope_n answer_n in_o these_o word_n 106._o epist_n 106._o scripsimus_fw-la ad_fw-la b._n memoriae_fw-la papam_fw-la innocentium_n etc._n etc._n we_o write_v to_o pope_n innocentius_n of_o bless_a memory_n ad_fw-la omne_fw-la ille_fw-la nobis_fw-la rescripsit_fw-la eodem_fw-la modo_fw-la quo_fw-la fas_fw-la erat_fw-la atque_fw-la oportebat_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la sedis_fw-la antistitem_fw-la he_o write_v again_o to_o we_o to_o every_o point_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v right_a and_o as_o it_o become_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n what_o can_v be_v now_o require_v more_o saint_n augustine_n acknowlegd_v the_o answer_n to_o have_v be_v meet_a for_o saint_n peter_n successor_n and_o yet_o shall_v the_o protestant_n now_o a_o day_n be_v suffer_v to_o rail_v at_o that_o epistle_n which_o saint_n augustine_n esteem_v so_o much_o that_o he_o make_v mention_n thereof_o with_o great_a commendation_n saint_n augustine_n then_o do_v confess_v that_o from_o all_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v wont_v even_o in_o the_o old_a time_n to_o be_v consult_v as_o be_v the_o general_a pastor_n who_o duty_n it_o be_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o whole_a militant_a flock_n the_o particular_a bishop_n themselves_o be_v comprise_v therein_o i_o have_v be_v somewhat_o long_o about_o s._n augustine_n doctrine_n partly_o for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o man_n partly_o because_o i_o perceive_v that_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v to_o geve_v more_o credit_n to_o he_o then_o to_o any_o other_o father_n but_o if_o s._n augustine_n be_v not_o clear_a for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v never_o nothing_o clear_v in_o he_o let_v this_o one_o place_n be_v add_v for_o a_o surpluse_n to_o the_o rest_n the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n say_v he_o need_v not_o to_o care_v for_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o see_v hinselfe_n to_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n as_o well_o with_o other_o country_n whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v to_o africa_n itself_o as_o also_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o qua_fw-la semper_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la cathedrae_fw-la viguit_fw-la principatus_fw-la 162._o epist_n 162._o in_o the_o which_o roman_n church_n the_o principate_v or_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n have_v always_o flourish_v not_o only_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n but_o also_o the_o principal_a power_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n do_v not_o only_o stand_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o it_o flourish_v there_o and_o that_o not_o only_o during_o s._n peter_n life_n or_o a_o little_a after_o but_o semper_fw-la always_o happy_a then_o be_v we_o who_o till_o this_o day_n communicate_v in_o faith_n with_o that_o apostolic_a chair_n and_o woe_n to_o they_o that_o call_v the_o apostolic_a chair_n the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n to_o go_v forward_o with_o some_o other_o holy_a father_n ingratis_fw-la in_o lib._n de_fw-la ingratis_fw-la prosper_v the_o bishop_n of_o regium_n be_v of_o the_o same_o time_n though_o sumwhat_o young_a than_o s._n augustine_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o heretic_n pelagius_n write_v thus_o touch_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n pestem_fw-la subeuntem_fw-la prima_fw-la recidit_fw-la sedes_fw-la roma_fw-la petri_n quae_fw-la pastoralis_fw-la honoris_fw-la facta_fw-la caput_fw-la mundo_fw-la quicquid_fw-la non_fw-la possicet_fw-la armis_fw-la religione_fw-la tenet_fw-la rome_n the_o see_v of_o peter_n do_v first_o cut_v of_o pelagius_n be_v a_o pestilence_n which_o then_o begin_v to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n the_o which_o rome_n be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o pastoral_a honour_n unto_o the_o world_n hold_v all_o that_o by_o religion_n what_o so_o ever_o it_o do_v not_o possess_v by_o the_o sword_n rome_n then_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o peter_n the_o head_n of_o bisshoplie_fw-fr honour_n or_o of_o pastoral_n power_n the_o which_o reach_v far_o and_o have_v more_o christian_n subject_n to_o it_o because_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n sit_v there_o then_o ever_o it_o have_v through_o the_o mighty_a empire_n thereof_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n prosper_n say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n 16_o de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la gentium_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 16_o roma_fw-la per_fw-la apostolici_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la principatum_fw-la amplior_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la arce_fw-la religionis_fw-la quam_fw-la solio_fw-la potestatis_fw-la rome_n through_o the_o chiefedome_n or_o primacy_n of_o the_o
can_v by_o his_o kingly_a power_n judge_v in_o the_o great_a nor_o the_o priest_n who_o be_v the_o king_n superior_a in_o the_o lesser_a can_v possible_o but_o much_o more_o be_v his_o superior_a in_o the_o great_a objection_n the_o remove_n of_o the_o objection_n or_o have_v we_o diverse_a kind_n of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o of_o spiritual_a cause_n be_v there_o never_o so_o many_a the_o act_n of_o parliament_n geve_v the_o high_a and_o the_o supreme_a government_n of_o they_o all_o cause_n in_o all_o cause_n unto_o the_o king_n and_o yet_o the_o king_n lack_v not_o only_o practice_v experience_n or_o cunning_a but_o also_o he_o lack_v spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n to_o hear_v confession_n to_o absolve_v man_n from_o their_o sin_n to_o enjoin_v penance_n to_o consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n to_o order_fw-fr bishop_n and_o priest_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n or_o to_o excommunicate_v open_a sinner_n here_o master_n jewel_n will_v say_v that_o he_o never_o mean_v the_o prince_n shall_v be_v supreme_a governor_n either_o in_o administer_a or_o in_o frequent_v or_o in_o direct_v other_o to_o frequent_v the_o holy_a mystery_n or_o in_o any_o like_o sacramental_a function_n why_o then_o do_v he_o and_o his_o fellow_n swear_v man_n supremacy_n the_o oath_n of_o the_o supremacy_n general_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o secular_a christian_a prince_n supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o cause_n why_o do_v he_o not_o rather_o declaim_v and_o speak_v with_o all_o his_o force_n against_o that_o most_o impiouse_a and_o blasphemouse_n oath_n yea_o so_o impiouse_a that_o those_o protestant_n who_o most_o earnest_o press_v the_o set_n forth_o thereof_o dare_v not_o now_o justify_v the_o foorm_n of_o it_o shall_v man_n in_o a_o christian_a realm_n be_v sworen_n upon_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n to_o keep_v believe_v or_o acknowledge_v that_o which_o noman_n at_o all_o no_o not_o they_o who_o procure_v it_o dare_v maintain_v see_v good_a country_n man_n see_v the_o discretion_n of_o your_o parliament_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n a_o man_n alive_a abhor_v from_o that_o act_n which_o the_o laity_n make_v and_o enact_v as_o a_o form_n so_o wary_o draw_v whereunto_o man_n may_v commit_v their_o everlasting_a salvation_n or_o damnation_n mark_v i_o say_v that_o m._n nowell_n m._n horn_n m._n jewel_n dare_v not_o warrant_v the_o king_n to_o be_v suprem_fw-mi governor_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n but_o rather_o they_o confess_v that_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o govern_v the_o king_n concern_v his_o come_n to_o the_o mystery_n and_o in_o such_o like_a matter_n this_o much_o be_v say_v concern_v philippus_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n who_o obey_v but_o govern_v not_o the_o bishop_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n let_v we_o now_o go_v forward_o 324._o an._n dom._n 324._o constantinus_n the_o great_a perceive_v the_o bishop_n which_o come_v to_o the_o synod_n at_o nice_a to_o have_v many_o quarrel_n and_o suit_n among_o themselves_o appoint_v a_o day_n wherein_o every_o man_n shall_v offer_v his_o complaint_n in_o writing_n and_o when_o he_o have_v take_v all_o their_o libel_n without_o disclose_v the_o content_n of_o they_o 2._o ruffinus_n lib._n 10._o eccles_n histor_n cap._n 2._o he_o say_v unto_o the_o bishop_n deus_fw-la vos_fw-la constituit_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la &_o potestatem_fw-la vobis_fw-la dedit_fw-la de_fw-la nobis_fw-la quoque_fw-la iudicandi_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la nos_fw-la a_o vobis_fw-la rectè_fw-la iudicamur_fw-la vos_fw-la auten_o non_fw-la potestis_fw-la ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la iudicari_fw-la propter_fw-la quod_fw-la dei_fw-la solius_fw-la inter_fw-la vos_fw-la expectate_v iudicium_fw-la god_n have_v make_v you_o priest_n or_o sacrificer_n and_o have_v give_v you_o power_n to_o judge_v of_o we_o also_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v right_o judge_v of_o you_o but_o you_o can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o man_n for_o which_o cause_n expect_v you_o or_o tarry_v for_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n alone_o among_o you_o this_o discourse_n of_o constantine_n contain_v three_o thing_n worthy_a to_o be_v note_v first_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n be_v sacerdotes_fw-la priest_n or_o man_n that_o have_v public_a authority_n to_o make_v external_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n for_o the_o whole_a 5._o heb._n 5._o peple_n sin_n second_o he_o say_v that_o they_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v even_o of_o the_o emperor_n himself_o and_o this_o their_o power_n of_o judge_v depend_v of_o their_o power_n of_o priesthood_n for_o the_o high_a power_n may_v judge_v the_o low_a but_o no_o power_n can_v be_v high_o than_o the_o power_n of_o a_o priest_n because_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n in_o that_o office_n which_o most_o direct_o touch_v god_n honour_n and_o service_n 1_o malac._n 1_o whereupon_o s._n augustin_n have_v say_v what_o be_v moses_n if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o priest_n 98_o in_o psal_n 98_o geve_v this_o reason_n of_o his_o word_n nunquid_fw-la maior_fw-la sacerdote_fw-la esse_fw-la poterat_fw-la whether_o can_v he_o be_v great_a than_o a_o priest_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v see_v moses_n be_v the_o great_a officer_n among_o the_o israelit_n and_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o be_v great_a than_o a_o priest_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n the_o priest_n then_o of_o god_n be_v the_o great_a officer_n in_o earth_n have_v power_n to_o judge_v even_o of_o a_o emperor_n if_o any_o be_v in_o their_o parish_n or_o diocese_n three_o of_o these_o former_a point_n constantine_n deduce_v a_o other_o conclusion_n that_o priest_n can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o man_n how_o then_o can_v they_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o emperor_n neither_o do_v it_o skill_n that_o constantine_n seem_v to_o have_v judge_v certain_a priest_n or_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n when_o the_o donatists_n appeal_v unto_o hin_n for_o he_o do_v it_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v à _fw-la sanctis_fw-la antistitibus_fw-la postea_fw-la veniam_fw-la petiturus_fw-la 162._o in_o epistol_n 162._o as_o one_o that_o will_v afterward_o ask_v leave_n or_o pardon_v of_o the_o holy_a bishop_n who_o ask_v leave_v or_o pardon_v for_o that_o which_o he_o may_v do_v by_o his_o own_o power_n he_o do_v it_o then_o through_o the_o importunat_a suit_n of_o heretic_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n otherwise_o detest_a they_o that_o demand_v his_o judgement_n after_o that_o the_o bishop_n have_v judge_v 162._o optat._n li_n 2_o august_n in_o epist_n 162._o and_o find_v great_a fault_n therewith_o himself_o as_o optatus_n and_o s._n augustine_n also_o do_v witness_n but_o take_v away_o importunity_n of_o heretic_n and_o the_o commission_n leave_n or_o pardon_v of_o the_o right_a bishop_n who_o may_v for_o diverse_a respect_n either_o commit_v certain_a ecclesiastical_a cause_n to_o lay_v man_n or_o wink_v for_o a_o time_n at_o such_o judgement_n take_v away_o i_o say_v heresy_n and_o permission_n and_o ordinary_o it_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o any_o secular_a prince_n who_o need_v the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n for_o his_o reconciliation_n unto_o god_n shall_v sit_v judge_n upon_o he_o in_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n 5._o 2._o cor._n 5._o at_o who_o hand_n he_o must_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o who_o ministry_n his_o soul_n must_v be_v purge_v now_o if_o one_o priest_n do_v judge_v a_o other_o that_o be_v god_n judgement_n 3_o deut._n 17._o &_o num._n 3_o and_o not_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n for_o god_n have_v set_v one_o priest_n over_o a_o other_o as_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v above_o the_o levite_n in_o moses_n law_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n whereof_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n or_o then_o the_o seven_o deacon_n these_o word_n then_o of_o constantine_n vos_fw-la non_fw-la potestis_fw-la ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la iudicari_fw-la 2._o ruffin_n li._n 1._o cap._n 2._o you_o o_o priest_n of_o god_n can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o man_n be_v thus_o mean_v the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n be_v such_o as_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o any_o secular_a or_o earthly_a jurisdiction_n and_o see_v all_o the_o power_n of_o judgement_n which_o even_o christian_n emperor_n or_o king_n have_v by_o their_o own_o state_n be_v earthly_a and_o secular_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o no_o king_n or_o emperor_n can_v by_o his_o own_o power_n judge_v a_o priest_n in_o priestly_a cause_n and_o in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n that_o all_o the_o power_n of_o emperor_n though_o they_o be_v christian_n be_v secular_a constantine_n himself_o pronounce_v say_v to_o the_o donatists_n as_o optatus_n record_v petitis_fw-la á_z i_n in_o seculo_fw-la iudicium_fw-la 1._o de_fw-fr schism_n donatist_n lib._n 1._o cùm_fw-la ego_fw-la ipse_fw-la christi_fw-la iudicium_fw-la expectem_fw-la you_o ask_v of_o i_o judgement_n in_o the_o world_n whereas_o i_o myself_o look_v for_o christ_n judgement_n there_o be_v then_o two_o judgement_n one_o in_o the_o world_n a_o other_o
etiam_fw-la vestrae_fw-la innotescat_fw-la sanctitati_fw-la caput_fw-la caput_fw-la quae_fw-la caput_fw-la est_fw-la omnium_fw-la sanctarum_fw-la ecclesiarun_n neither_o do_v we_o suffer_v any_o thing_n that_o do_v apperteine_a to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n how_o manifest_a and_o undoubted_a so_o ever_o it_o be_v which_o be_v call_v in_o question_n but_o the_o same_o be_v also_o notify_v to_o your_o holiness_n church_n the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o all_o holy_a church_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o holy_a church_n if_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o all_o holy_a church_n and_o therefore_o be_v make_v privy_a to_o all_o ordinance_n and_o law_n which_o apperteine_a to_o the_o state_n of_o church_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n whereof_o a_o king_n or_o emperor_n shall_v be_v suprem_a head_n be_v no_o holy_a church_n but_o a_o profane_a synagog_n and_o a_o malignant_a congregation_n such_o as_o those_o of_o the_o arrian_n donatists_n and_o pelagians_n be_v who_o obey_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o such_o bishop_n as_o be_v of_o his_o fellowship_n heretic_n who_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o heretic_n but_o either_o julianus_n the_o renegade_n or_o valens_n or_o the_o king_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o of_o the_o vandal_n as_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n do_v witness_n here_o the_o order_n and_o place_n require_v that_o i_o shall_v declare_v also_o how_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n 609._o an._n dom._n 609._o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n bonifacius_n the_o three_o pronounce_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n head_n of_o all_o church_n but_o the_o protestant_n not_o able_a to_o deny_v the_o story_n sai_o that_o now_o first_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n begin_v to_o be_v account_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n assertion_n a_o false_a assertion_n which_o thing_n shall_v appear_v as_o true_a as_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v for_o s._n gregory_n be_v before_o bonifacius_n 54._o an._n dom._n 607._o lib._n 11._o epist_n 54._o say_v of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n apostolica_fw-la sedes_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la caput_fw-la est_fw-la the_o apostolic_a see_v be_v head_n of_o all_o church_n before_o he_o also_o the_o bishop_n of_o patara_n 538._o an._n 538._o be_v a_o grecian_a say_v of_o syluerius_n the_o pope_n ille_fw-la papa_n est_fw-la super_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la mundi_fw-la totius_fw-la he_o be_v pope_n over_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 534._o an._n 534._o justinian_n write_v to_o joannes_n the_o pope_n as_o i_o allege_v before_o call_v his_o holiness_n caput_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la head_n of_o all_o church_n 486._o an._n 486._o eugenius_n the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n be_v a_o african_a have_v say_v before_o justinians_n time_n as_o victor_n write_v romana_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la caput_fw-la en_fw-fr omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la vandal_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la persecut_fw-la vandal_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n yea_o prosper_n have_v write_v before_o eugenius_n sedes_fw-la roma_fw-la petri_n ingratis_fw-la an._n 460._o de_fw-fr ingratis_fw-la quae_fw-la pastoralis_fw-la honoris_fw-la facta_fw-la caput_fw-la mundo_fw-la rome_n the_o see_v of_o peter_n which_o be_v make_v unto_o the_o world_n paul_n an._n 446._o in_o nativit_fw-la petri_n &_o paul_n the_o head_n of_o pastoral_a honour_n leo_fw-la the_o great_a be_v elder_n they_o prosper_v preach_v thus_o roma_fw-la per_fw-la sacram_fw-la b._n petri_n sedem_fw-la caput_fw-la orbis_fw-la effecta_fw-la rome_n by_o the_o holy_a seat_n of_o peter_n be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n âª_o and_o again_o êquos_fw-la universalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cura_fw-la ad_fw-la unam_fw-la b._n petri_n sedem_fw-la confluit_fw-la 82_o ad_fw-la anastas_n ep_v 82_o by_o who_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n flow_v to_o the_o one_o see_v of_o peter_n that_o nothing_o may_v at_o any_o time_n dissent_v from_o his_o head_n now_o the_o four_o general_a council_n 456._o an._n 456._o albeit_o it_o be_v not_o elder_a in_o year_n than_o leo_n yet_o consist_v of_o 630._o bishop_n gather_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v hearken_v unto_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a flock_n as_o of_o most_o ancient_a and_o peerless_a authority_n this_o great_a council_n make_v relation_n to_o pope_n leo_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o have_v be_v do_v there_o &c._n act._n 3._o sancta_fw-la &_o magna_fw-la &c._n &c._n write_v to_o he_o tu_fw-la quidem_fw-la sicut_fw-la membris_fw-la caput_fw-la praeeras_fw-la thou_o be_v over_o we_o as_o the_o head_n be_v over_o his_o member_n and_o whereas_o the_o church_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o vineyard_n 5._o isai_n 5._o they_o there_o confess_v that_o unto_o pope_n leo_fw-la vineae_fw-la custodia_fw-la à _fw-la saluatore_fw-la commissa_fw-la est_fw-la the_o keep_v of_o the_o vineyard_n be_v commit_v of_o our_o saviour_n note_v here_o gentle_a reader_n that_o this_o famous_a great_a and_o learned_a council_n refer_v the_o matter_n to_o our_o saviour_n and_o not_o unto_o phocas_n or_o to_o any_o mortal_a man_n the_o keep_n of_o the_o vineyard_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n by_o our_o saviour_n himself_o 64_o an._n d._n 426_o lib._n 12._o in_o joan._n c._n 64_o if_o we_o shall_v go_v yet_o high_o when_o cyrillus_n confess_v s._n peter_n to_o have_v ben_fw-mi caput_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v he_o not_o confess_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n who_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v much_o more_o the_o head_n of_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o all_o bishop_n be_v shall_v we_o go_v from_o cyrillus_n to_o s._n ambrose_n 308_o an._n d._n 308_o who_o write_v upon_o s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o timothe_n timoth._n in_o c._n 3._o 1._o epistol_n ad_fw-la timoth._n call_v damasus_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o ruler_n or_o governor_n of_o that_o church_n in_o his_o time_n which_o church_n be_v name_v of_o s._n paul_n the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o pillour_n of_o truth_n meaning_n that_o pope_n damasus_n be_v governor_n of_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n and_o not_o only_o of_o any_o one_o parish_n or_o diocese_n and_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o to_o be_v a_o temporal_a ruler_n of_o god_n whole_a church_n 15._o tripar_fw-la li._n 4._o c._n 15._o but_o to_o be_v the_o temporal_a head_n thereof_o say_v not_o sozomenus_n that_o pope_n julius_n curam_fw-la gessit_fw-la omnium_fw-la propter_fw-la sedis_fw-la propriae_fw-la dignitatem_fw-la he_o take_v the_o cure_n of_o all_o for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o his_o own_o see_v where_o all_o be_v comprise_v what_o can_v be_v except_v optatus_n donatist_n an._n d_o 370_o lib._n 2._o the_o schism_n donatist_n who_o prove_v s._n peter_n to_o have_v be_v head_n because_o he_o be_v call_v of_o christ_n cephas_n a_o rock_n for_o the_o rock_n or_o foundation_n be_v that_o unto_o the_o house_n which_o the_o head_n be_v to_o the_o body_n do_v thereby_o refer_v the_o primacy_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o of_o his_o successor_n to_o christ_n himself_o 300._o an._n 300._o if_o i_o shall_v go_v now_o to_o the_o council_n of_o 300._o bishop_n hold_v at_o sinuessa_n where_o although_o marcellinus_n have_v confess_v himself_o to_o have_v do_v idolatry_n yet_o all_o the_o bishop_n answer_v prima_fw-la sedes_fw-la non_fw-la iudicabitur_fw-la à _fw-la quoquam_fw-la council_n tom._n 1._o council_n the_o first_o see_n shall_v be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n will_v it_o not_o thereby_o appear_v that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n beig_o the_o first_o see_v be_v not_o prefer_v to_o that_o honour_n by_o any_o mortal_a man_n otherwise_o he_o that_o have_v pfer_v it_o may_v also_o have_v judge_v it_o but_o be_v make_v head_n of_o all_o church_n by_o he_o who_o say_v to_o s._n peter_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 16._o matt._n 16._o it_o be_v not_o therefore_o phocas_n but_o jesus_n christ_n who_o make_v s._n peter_n the_o temporal_a foundation_n and_o head_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n make_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o successor_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v before_o let_v we_o now_o go_v forward_o with_o other_o good_a emperor_n and_o king_n show_v that_o not_o phocas_n alone_o but_o other_o also_o after_o hin_n honour_v the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o the_o high_a power_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n constantinus_n the_o four_o be_v a_o most_o catholic_a prince_n mundi_fw-la beda_n de_fw-fr sex_n aetat_fw-la mundi_fw-la procure_v the_o six_o general_a council_n to_o be_v call_v and_o therein_o confess_v himself_o to_o have_v wonder_v at_o the_o relation_n of_o pope_n agatho_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o voice_n of_o peter_n 6._o act._n 18._o synod_n 6._o the_o same_o emperor_n in_o the_o time_n of_o benedictus_n the_o second_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n decree_v 2_o a_o 688._o platina_n in_o vita_fw-la benedict_n 2_o ut_fw-la deinceps_fw-la quem_fw-la clerus_fw-la populus_fw-la exercitusque_fw-la romanus_n in_fw-la pontificem_fw-la delegisset_fw-la
damasum_fw-la hierone_n s._n 3_o s._n 1._o tim._n 3_o ambrose_n 162._o ambrose_n in_o psal_n contra_fw-la donatisâas_n &_o in_o ep_n 162._o s._n augustin_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v so_o esteem_v the_o say_v succession_n of_o peter_n that_o without_o the_o unity_n of_o that_o chaier_n they_o account_v no_o salvation_n and_o in_o it_o they_o reckon_v a_o assurance_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n if_o god_n have_v prosper_v that_o succession_n against_o the_o envy_n of_o all_o heretic_n and_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o all_o catholic_n in_o all_o age_n if_o thence_o the_o faith_n of_o chricte_a have_v be_v dilate_v and_o spread_v into_o diverse_a country_n after_o all_o these_o gratiouse_a and_o miraculouse_a work_v of_o christ_n to_o charge_v that_o see_v so_o well-beloved_a of_o god_n not_o only_o with_o error_n which_o yet_o be_v false_a nor_o only_a with_o decree_a of_o heresy_n which_o be_v impossible_a 22._o luc._n 22._o because_o christ_n have_v pray_v for_o it_o but_o to_o charge_v it_o even_o with_o the_o beget_n and_o nurse_v and_o foster_a up_o and_o maintain_v of_o antichrist_n himself_n it_o be_v to_o speak_v in_o short_a word_n to_o burden_n christ_n himself_o with_o the_o bring_v forth_o and_o with_o the_o commend_v of_o antichrist_n unto_o the_o world_n the_o rage_a madness_n of_o the_o protestant_n not_o be_v content_a to_o burden_v the_o apostolic_a see_v of_o rome_n with_o abuse_n or_o with_o mean_a error_n will_v needs_o have_v not_o a_o friend_n or_o member_n of_o antichrist_n but_o the_o very_a head_n and_o capitaine_fw-fr of_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n to_o sit_v in_o s._n peter_n own_o chair_n and_o that_o be_v not_o only_o affirm_v by_o bawd_n and_o minstrel_n and_o player_n but_o also_o by_o preacher_n and_o doctor_n of_o this_o new_a divinity_n and_o it_o be_v beleve_v of_o ignorant_a man_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o though_o it_o have_v not_o be_v christ_n only_o who_o have_v set_v rome_n in_o so_o great_a honour_n as_o it_o have_v always_o have_v 5._o ambros_n lib._n 5._o it_o be_v not_o antichrist_n but_o jesus_n christ_n who_o make_v s._n peter_n to_o go_v thither_o and_o to_o die_v there_o and_o to_o have_v a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o that_o city_n without_o any_o intermission_n or_o come_n between_o of_o infidelity_n or_o of_o profess_a heresy_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o christian_a profession_n even_o till_o this_o day_n pontificale_fw-la vide_fw-la pontificale_fw-la it_o be_v not_o antichrist_n but_o christ_n who_o give_v the_o crown_n of_o martyrdom_n to_o almost_o forty_o bisshoppe_n of_o rome_n do_v christ_n they_o prepare_v the_o way_n for_o antichrist_n by_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o his_o apostle_n can_v you_o make_v none_o other_o man_n to_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o that_o curse_a creature_n beside_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o redeemer_n of_o mankind_n o_o blasphemouse_n tongue_n and_o curse_a thought_n or_o tell_v i_o who_o have_v so_o many_o general_a counsel_n so_o many_o faithful_a prince_n and_o nation_n honour_v all_o this_o while_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n we_o say_v they_o have_v honour_v christ_n jesus_n in_o his_o vicar_n you_o say_v they_o have_v commit_v fornication_n with_o antichrist_n ergo_fw-la have_v christ_n no_o man_n else_o upon_o who_o he_o may_v êmit_v antichrist_n to_o be_v build_v but_o only_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o peter_n upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o own_o church_n christ_n say_v hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v neither_o against_o the_o rock_n which_o be_v peter_n 16._o math._n 16._o as_o it_o have_v be_v evident_o prove_v nor_o against_o his_o church_n which_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o rock_n and_o yet_o have_v hell_n gate_n so_o far_o prevail_v against_o the_o rock_n which_o be_v peter_n that_o even_o antichrist_n himself_o do_v sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o rock_n do_v christ_n so_o much_o labour_n to_o prefer_v s._n peter_n that_o in_o the_o end_n antichrist_n may_v have_v a_o most_o honourable_a seat_n prepare_v by_o god_n himself_o for_o his_o abominable_a enterprise_n be_v they_o worthy_a of_o the_o name_n of_o man_n who_o fear_v not_o to_o avouche_v this_o detestable_a and_o blasphemous_a fable_n sure_o although_o the_o very_a filthiness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v once_o understand_v be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v it_o self_n for_o ever_o yet_o that_o they_o may_v perceive_v i_o fight_v not_o against_o they_o with_o word_n only_o but_o also_o with_o authority_n and_o reason_n i_o will_v brief_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o ancient_a father_n why_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o be_v antichrist_n himself_o as_o the_o protestant_n do_v most_o impudent_o and_o unlerned_o teach_v i_o must_v in_o deed_n confess_v the_o thing_n i_o speak_v of_o to_o be_v so_o hard_a that_o no_o more_o can_v be_v say_v in_o it_o them_z either_o god_n word_n or_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n have_v reveal_v 13_o isai_n 11._o dan._n 8._o &_o 9_o &_o 11._o math._n 24_o joan._n 5._o &_o 1._o epist_n e._n 2_o 2._o thess_n 2_o apoca._n 13_o it_o be_v then_o the_o common_a and_o certain_a judgement_n of_o all_o holy_a writer_n that_o antichrist_n who_o be_v so_o notable_o prophesy_v of_o in_o isaias_n in_o daniel_n in_o the_o gospel_n in_o s._n paul_n and_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n be_v one_o certain_a man_n but_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o any_o one_o certain_a man_n but_o their_o succession_n be_v the_o continuance_n of_o a_o certain_a office_n in_o which_o some_o hundred_o of_o man_n have_v succeed_v one_o after_o the_o other_o therefore_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o antichrist_n as_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v in_o the_o old_a time_n to_o many_o prophet_n 104._o psal_n 104._o priest_n and_o king_n who_o be_v anoint_a for_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fulfil_v do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o there_o shall_v come_v one_o certain_a singular_a person_n who_o alone_o shall_v be_v the_o saviour_n of_o mankind_n 2._o 1._o joan._n 2._o so_o the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n be_v give_v to_o many_o wicked_a adversary_n of_o christ_n and_o namely_o to_o all_o heretic_n do_v not_o hinder_v but_o rather_o help_v to_o prove_v that_o some_o one_o singular_a man_n shall_v come_v at_o the_o length_n who_o shall_v pass_v all_o other_o man_n in_o set_v himself_o against_o christ_n this_o comparison_n of_o i_o be_v direct_o prove_v by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n for_o christ_n say_v unto_o the_o jew_n 5._o joan_n 5._o i_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o my_o father_n and_o you_o receive_v i_o not_o if_o a_o other_o come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n him_z you_o will_v receive_v joan._n hieron_n quaest_a 11._o ad_fw-la algasiam_fw-la cyril_n in_o joan._n lib._n 3_o cap._n 6._o chrysost_n hom._n 40._o in_o joan._n which_o word_n be_v confess_v by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n to_o be_v speak_v prophetical_o of_o antichrist_n do_v prove_v that_o as_o christ_n be_v one_o certain_a man_n so_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v one_o certain_a man_n the_o only_a odds_n be_v that_o christ_n come_v from_o god_n but_o antichrist_n from_o the_o devil_n he_z to_o save_v this_o to_o destroy_v he_z to_o unite_v this_o to_o divide_v and_o to_o distract_v but_o in_o this_o they_o both_o agree_v that_o each_o of_o they_o be_v one_o singular_a person_n 2._o 2._o thes_n 2._o and_o this_o much_o s._n paul_n do_v manifest_o teach_v say_v that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n must_v be_v reveal_v before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o say_a man_n of_o sin_n be_v describe_v in_o s._n paul_n by_o the_o article_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o man_n or_o that_o man_n and_o not_o a_o man_n for_o the_o man_n betoken_v one_o certain_a man_n by_o name_n who_o be_v there_o call_v also_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o wicked_a man_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o son_n of_o perdition_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o adversary_n and_o not_o as_o the_o english_a bible_n have_v evil_o translate_v it_o a_o adversary_n who_o be_v speak_v of_o such_o as_o never_o come_v before_o nor_o shall_v come_v after_o who_o be_v call_v of_o s._n john_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 2._o 1._o joan._n 2._o the_o antichrist_n the_o strength_n of_o the_o greek_a article_n in_o this_o word_n the_o man_n saint_n cyrillus_n declare_v in_o this_o wise_a 4._o in_o joan._n lib._n 1._o c._n 4._o quum_fw-la homo_fw-la sine_fw-la articulo_fw-la dicitur_fw-la homo_fw-la quispiam_fw-la designatur_fw-la quando_fw-la autem_fw-la articulus_fw-la accedit_fw-la unicum_fw-la atque_fw-la singularem_fw-la hominem_fw-la denotat_fw-la man._n man._n when_o a_o man_n be_v name_v without_o the_o article_n any_o man_n be_v mean_v but_o when_o the_o article_n
cap._n 7._o which_o thing_n caluin_n account_v a_o beastly_a matter_n again_o at_o geneva_n his_o doctrine_n be_v decay_v for_o whereas_o he_o beleve_v that_o christ_n soul_n go_v down_o into_o hell_n even_o to_o the_o place_n where_o the_o soul_n be_v torment_v in_o everlasting_a fire_n apostol_n in_o 2._o act._n apostol_n beza_n so_o much_o mislike_v he_o therein_o that_o he_o will_v have_v christ_n soul_n to_o go_v no_o low_o then_o into_o the_o grave_n the_o which_o opinion_n the_o english_a translation_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v at_o geneva_n do_v embrace_v and_o concern_v his_o opinion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o i_o may_v omit_v how_o vehementlie_o flacius_n illyricus_n have_v shake_v it_o already_o in_o his_o book_n against_o beza_n it_o can_v not_o long_o stand_v because_o the_o common_a sort_n can_v not_o understande_v it_o and_o worthy_o for_o that_o which_o be_v not_o true_a be_v not_o able_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o his_o doctrine_n be_v altogether_o ground_v upon_o imagination_n without_o any_o assurance_n of_o god_n word_n to_o be_v short_a if_o the_o anabaptist_n shall_v not_o by_o a_o worse_a heresy_n oppress_v the_o glory_n of_o caluins_n doctrine_n or_o if_o all_o other_o mean_n to_o destroy_v it_o shall_v fail_v at_o the_o lest_o by_o this_o one_o way_n it_o be_v sure_a to_o perish_v for_o as_o the_o marcionist_n the_o manichee_n the_o arrian_n the_o nestorian_n the_o eutychians_n the_o monothelite_n the_o pelagian_n the_o donatists_n the_o imagebreaker_n be_v at_o the_o last_o all_o wrap_v in_o apostasy_n and_o infidelity_n and_o be_v swallow_a uppe_o by_o the_o moor_n the_o saracen_n and_o the_o turck_n even_o so_o be_v it_o most_o certain_a that_o if_o the_o caluinist_n do_v escape_v other_o destruction_n they_o shall_v perish_v in_o the_o end_n either_o be_v make_v infidel_n or_o be_v conquer_v of_o other_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n how_o safe_a stand_v the_o see_v apostolic_a how_o many_o hundred_o year_n have_v it_o dure_v always_o like_a to_o itself_o how_o unremovable_a be_v that_o rock_n how_o do_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o flourish_v more_o and_o more_o every_o day_n truth_n which_o be_v the_o dawghter_n of_o time_n have_v now_o make_v many_o heretic_n to_o confess_v that_o they_o think_v so_o much_o can_v never_o have_v be_v say_v for_o the_o apostolic_a see_v of_o rome_n as_o now_o they_o find_v in_o so_o much_o that_o if_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v now_o reveal_v have_v be_v know_v before_o thousand_o of_o they_o will_v never_o have_v go_v that_o way_n but_o now_o either_o shame_n or_o slewth_n or_o covetousness_n or_o fear_n of_o worldly_a prince_n or_o the_o hard_a profession_n of_o the_o catholic_n or_o desperation_n cause_v they_o to_o stop_v their_o eye_n and_o their_o ear_n lest_o perhaps_o they_o may_v see_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v convert_v 1â_n joan._n 1â_n yet_o god_n to_o show_v his_o almighty_a power_n do_v daily_o revoke_v some_o to_o his_o true_a church_n both_o in_o germannie_n and_o france_n and_o i_o beseech_v he_o to_o do_v the_o like_a in_o our_o country_n of_o england_n also_o the_o five_o mark_n of_o a_o antichristian_a the_o five_o mark_n whereby_o to_o know_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n be_v if_o any_o man_n preach_v god_n word_n without_o commission_n rome_v his_o superior_n for_o such_o a_o one_o run_v before_o he_o be_v send_v and_o come_v of_o himself_o as_o antichrist_n shall_v do_v 10._o rom._n 10._o for_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v say_v s._n paul_n except_o they_o be_v send_v now_o as_o christ_n the_o head_n preacher_n of_o all_o be_v send_v of_o his_o father_n visible_o in_o flesh_n so_o he_o visible_o send_v his_o apostle_n 4._o joan._n 20._o 2._o tim._n 4._o and_o they_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n send_v other_o to_o preach_v and_o their_o successor_n from_o age_n to_o age_n have_v send_v other_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n even_o till_o this_o day_n so_o that_o all_o catholic_a preacher_n be_v able_a to_o reduce_v their_o commlssion_n from_o step_n to_o step_v until_o they_o come_v to_o christ_n himself_o but_o see_v luther_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n rebel_v against_o their_o own_o bishop_n who_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o see_v they_o be_v not_o send_v of_o any_o in_o all_o the_o world_n who_o have_v a_o know_v and_o public_a authority_n from_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o they_o come_v of_o themselves_o and_o be_v not_o lawful_o send_v at_o all_o as_o for_o temporal_a magistrate_n who_o be_v only_a sheep_n and_o which_o can_v not_o preach_v themselves_o can_v much_o less_o send_v other_o to_o preach_v for_o no_o man_n can_v send_v a_o other_o to_o do_v that_o which_o himself_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v 13._o joan._n 13._o since_o no_o apostle_n or_o legat_n be_v great_a than_o he_o that_o send_v he_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o any_o temporal_a magistrate_n or_o any_o common_a weal_n to_o send_v luther_n to_o preach_v because_o they_o who_o shall_v have_v send_v he_o be_v by_o his_o judgement_n misbelever_v until_o he_o have_v convert_v they_o to_o a_o new_a faith_n and_o so_o when_o he_o have_v first_o preach_v his_o doctrine_n he_o be_v send_v of_o no_o man_n in_o all_o the_o world_n but_o come_v of_o himself_o and_o therefore_o be_v a_o antichrist_n 5._o joan._n 5._o who_o come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n as_o christ_n have_v tawght_fw-mi it_o be_v well_o know_v also_o that_o luther_n will_v not_o send_v zuinglius_fw-la to_o preach_v against_o himself_o neither_o will_v zuinglius_fw-la send_v caluin_n to_o deface_v his_o own_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o every_o one_o of_o these_o be_v a_o false_a preacher_n who_o come_v not_o from_o christ_n nor_o from_o his_o apostle_n or_o their_o successor_n as_o the_o pope_n do_v who_o succede_v lineal_o s._n peter_n as_o it_o be_v know_v the_o six_o mark_n of_o a_o antichristian_a the_o six_o mark_n whereby_o to_o know_v this_o brood_n of_o antichrist_n may_v be_v in_o that_o antichrist_n himself_o be_v altogether_o carnal_a shall_v prefer_v the_o temporal_a reign_n or_o sword_n before_o the_o spiritual_a a_o certain_a sign_n whereof_o this_o be_v because_o he_o shall_v constrain_v man_n with_o force_n of_o arm_n not_o only_o to_o keep_v their_o former_a faith_n for_o that_o be_v lawful_a for_o hin_n who_o be_v a_o true_a officer_n of_o god_n but_o also_o to_o take_v a_o new_a faith_n which_o thing_n no_o man_n will_v do_v except_o he_o be_v of_o this_o mind_n that_o man_n conscience_n ought_v to_o yield_v to_o his_o violent_a force_n and_o in_o deed_n when_o his_o master_n the_o devil_n say_v to_o christ_n 4._o math._n 4._o if_o thou_o fall_v down_o and_o adore_v i_o i_o will_v geve_v thou_o all_o these_o thing_n show_v all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v of_o this_o mind_n to_o pluck_v the_o service_n dew_n to_o god_n to_o himself_o and_o to_o make_v we_o prefer_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n before_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o antichrist_n who_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o devil_n shall_v put_v confidence_n also_o in_o a_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v he_o shall_v come_v in_o virtute_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v 2_o 2._o thess_n 2_o in_o power_n and_o strength_n whereunto_o it_o be_v very_o agreeable_a that_o his_o preacher_n also_o do_v prefer_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o temporal_a prince_n fecknam_n note_n in_o horn_n against_o m._n fecknam_n above_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o spiritual_a minister_n of_o christ_n teach_v that_o king_n be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o that_o secular_a prince_n may_v visit_v correct_v reform_v and_o depose_v any_o bishop_n in_o their_o own_o realm_n which_o be_v direct_o to_o say_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n be_v a_o high_a and_o a_o great_a power_n in_o god_n church_n than_o the_o power_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o of_o a_o pastor_n for_o as_o the_o lawyer_n know_v and_o natural_a reason_n teach_v arbitris_fw-la lege_fw-la 3._o &_o 4._o de_fw-fr arbitris_fw-la nec_fw-la par_fw-fr in_fw-la parem_fw-la potestatem_fw-la habet_fw-la nec_fw-la inferior_a in_o superiorem_fw-la neither_o any_o aequal_a have_v power_n upon_o his_o equal_a nor_o any_o inferior_a have_v power_n upon_o his_o superior_a but_o say_v the_o protestant_n the_o temporal_a king_n may_v depose_v a_o bishop_n and_o yet_o that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v just_o except_o he_o may_v first_o sit_v judge_n upon_o a_o bishop_n even_o as_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o sit_v judge_n over_o he_o as_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n he_o can_v not_o except_o he_o he_o be_v his_o superior_a therefore_o it_o be_v the_o protestant_n doctrine_n that_o a_o king_n temporal_a power_n for_o we_o speak_v
not_o of_o that_o king_n who_o be_v also_o a_o bishop_n be_v great_a than_o a_o bishops_n power_n which_o be_v spiriritual_a and_o heavenly_a what_o be_v this_o to_o say_v but_o only_o that_o the_o body_n be_v above_o the_o soul_n the_o civil_a policy_n above_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o temporal_a reign_n above_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o be_v a_o vehement_a mark_n to_o betray_v our_o new_a brother_n by_o for_o we_o speak_v not_o now_o of_o work_n or_o manner_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o a_o man_n love_v the_o world_n more_o than_o god_n or_o whether_o a_o pope_n be_v more_o greedy_a of_o his_o temporal_a iurisdistion_n then_o of_o his_o spiritual_a duty_n we_o speak_v not_o i_o say_v of_o these_o abuse_n let_v he_o that_o have_v they_o yea_o though_o he_o be_v a_o pope_n look_v well_o to_o himself_o in_o that_o behalf_n but_o we_o speak_v of_o doctrine_n at_o this_o tyme._n the_o pope_n teach_v that_o every_o spiritual_a pastor_n be_v of_o a_o high_a dignity_n they_o any_o temporal_a officer_n whatsoever_o he_o be_v and_o that_o because_o he_o be_v institute_v of_o christ_n for_o to_o help_v we_o towards_o life_n everlasting_a the_o protestant_n teach_v 4._o ephes_n 4._o that_o a_o christian_a emperor_n or_o king_n be_v above_o all_o spiritual_a pastor_n in_o his_o own_o realm_n and_o may_v depose_v they_o by_o his_o own_o power_n which_o be_v the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o antichrist_n for_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n though_o they_o be_v christian_n may_v not_o yet_o in_o spiritual_a matter_n rule_v the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o god_n people_n have_v what_o power_n the_o christian_a price_n have_v but_o only_o they_o may_v with_o their_o temporal_a law_n and_o power_n defend_v the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n which_o the_o bishop_n have_v already_o make_v as_o theodosius_n and_o all_o other_o good_a emperor_n use_v to_o do_v but_o if_o they_o will_v use_v their_o princely_a power_n to_o change_v the_o old_a law_n of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o make_v new_a law_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n which_o be_v not_o before_o make_v by_o the_o priest_n or_o to_o depose_v the_o ancient_a bishop_n who_o have_v cure_v of_o their_o soul_n then_o they_o be_v the_o member_n of_o antichrist_n as_o great_a athanasius_n have_v at_o large_a declare_v in_o describe_v the_o heinouse_a fact_n of_o the_o arrian_n in_o his_o time_n agentes_fw-la in_o epist_n ad_fw-la solitar_n vi_fw-la tam_fw-la agentes_fw-la who_o report_v that_o when_o constantius_n the_o emperor_n call_v paulinus_n the_o bishop_n of_o trever_n lucifer_n the_o bishop_n of_o sardinia_n eusebius_n the_o bishop_n of_o marcel_n and_o dionysius_n the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n before_o he_o will_v they_o to_o subscribe_v against_o athanasius_n because_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n and_o his_o proceeding_n those_o bless_a bishop_n exhort_v he_o ne_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la corrumperet_fw-la neve_o romanum_fw-la imperium_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la constitutionibus_fw-la immisceret_fw-la that_o he_o shall_v not_o corrupt_v church_n matter_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o mingle_v the_o roman_a empire_n with_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ordinance_n here_o you_o see_v that_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v discharge_v from_o meddle_v with_o church_n matter_n it_o be_v not_o only_o say_v arrian_n or_o heretic_n but_o it_o be_v say_v the_o roman_a empire_n ought_v not_o to_o mingle_v itself_o with_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n even_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o heretic_n be_v remove_v from_o church_n matter_n but_o a_o emperor_n be_v not_o only_o remove_v from_o they_o if_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n but_o also_o because_o he_o be_v a_o emperor_n only_o and_o not_o a_o bishop_n only_o this_o have_v be_v always_o the_o custom_n that_o emperor_n shall_v be_v careful_a to_o maintain_v the_o former_a constitution_n of_o bisshoppe_n and_o the_o civil_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o be_v christian_n aught_o to_o use_v the_o sword_n which_o they_o bear_v by_o god_n appointment_n for_o the_o church_n but_o the_o outward_a and_o civil_a peace_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n which_o towche_v the_o belefe_v and_o the_o inward_a direction_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v two_o thing_n much_o different_a ibidem_fw-la apud_fw-la athan._n ibidem_fw-la in_o so_o much_o that_o pope_n liberiê°_n say_v to_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o same_o emperor_n constantius_n as_o athanasius_n also_o do_v witness_n after_o this_o sort_n if_o the_o emperor_n will_v needs_o interpose_v his_o care_n for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a peace_n peace_n ecclesiastical_a peace_n let_v a_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n be_v make_v longè_fw-la à _fw-la palatio_fw-la ubi_fw-la nec_fw-la imperator_fw-la praesto_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la comes_fw-la se_fw-la ingerit_fw-la nec_fw-la iudex_fw-la minatur_fw-la synod_n ecclesiastical_a synod_n &_o caet_fw-la let_v the_o ecclesiastical_a meeting_n be_v make_v a_o great_a way_n of_o from_o the_o palace_n where_o neither_o a_o emperor_n be_v at_o hand_n nor_o a_o county_n thrust_v in_o himself_o nor_o a_o judge_n threaten_v but_o where_o the_o only_a fear_n of_o god_n and_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_a thus_o he_o say_v not_o that_o a_o emperor_n may_v in_o no_o case_n be_v at_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n but_o because_o he_o may_v not_o be_v there_o to_o use_v his_o imperial_a authority_n in_o judge_v the_o bishop_n or_o in_o prescribe_v what_o the_o church_n shall_v decree_v or_o believe_v but_o only_o in_o mayntein_v that_o which_o the_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o apostolic_a institution_n either_o have_v or_o shall_v agree_v upon_o that_o reverend_a father_n hosius_n who_o after_o that_o he_o have_v suffer_v persecution_n for_o christ_n faith_n under_o maximian_n live_v threescore_o year_n in_o the_o church_n be_v tempt_v by_o the_o same_o constantius_n to_o subscribe_v against_o athanasius_n agent_n in_o epi_fw-la ad_fw-la solitar_n vit_fw-mi agent_n ask_v first_o of_o he_o by_o letter_n whether_o his_o brother_n constans_n the_o good_a and_o catholic_a emperor_n do_v use_v to_o banish_v bishop_n or_o no_o and_o then_o whether_o constans_n his_o brother_n aliquando_fw-la iudicijs_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la intersuit_n be_v at_o any_o time_n a_o meddler_n with_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la last_o of_o all_o he_o say_v to_o he_o ne_fw-la te_fw-la misceas_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la neque_fw-la nobis_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la genere_fw-la praecipe_fw-la sed_fw-la potius_fw-la ea_fw-la à _fw-la nobis_fw-la disce_fw-la tibi_fw-la deus_fw-la imperium_fw-la commisit_fw-la nobis_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la concredidit_fw-la &_o quemad_a modum_fw-la qui_fw-la tuum_fw-la etiam_fw-la imperium_fw-la malignis_fw-la oculis_fw-la carpit_fw-la contradicit_fw-la ordinationi_fw-la divinae_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la cave_n ne_o quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ad_fw-la te_fw-la trahens_fw-la magno_fw-la crimini_fw-la obnoxius_fw-la fias_fw-la date_fw-la scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la caesaris_fw-la caesari_n &_o quae_fw-la dei_fw-la deo_fw-la neque_fw-la igitur_fw-la fas_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la imperium_fw-la tenere_fw-la neque_fw-la tu_fw-la thymiamatum_fw-la &_o sacrorum_fw-la potestatem_fw-la habes_fw-la imperator_fw-la do_v thou_o not_o intermeddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n neither_o do_v thou_o command_v what_o we_o shall_v do_v in_o this_o kind_n of_o matter_n but_o rather_o lern_v they_o of_o us._n god_n have_v commit_v the_o empire_n unto_o thou_o and_o he_o have_v put_v we_o in_o trust_n with_o âhose_v thing_n which_o concern_v the_o church_n and_o like_a as_o he_o that_o malign_o âarpeth_v thy_o empire_n do_v gainsay_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n so_o do_v thou_o take_v thede_v lest_o in_o take_v unto_o thou_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n thou_o be_v make_v guilty_a of_o a_o great_a crime_n it_o be_v write_v 22._o math._n 22._o geve_v unto_o caesar_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n and_o unto_o god_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v go_n therefore_o it_o be_v neither_o lauful_a for_o we_o to_o have_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o earth_n neither_o haste_n thou_o o_o emperor_n any_o power_n over_o the_o holy_a incense_n and_o sacrifice_n mark_v that_o it_o be_v rehearse_v for_o a_o praise_n in_o the_o catholic_a emperor_n constans_n not_o to_o have_v meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n also_o athanasius_n himself_o say_v thus_o for_o his_o own_o part_n antè_fw-la in_o epist_n ut_fw-la antè_fw-la si_fw-mi istud_fw-la est_fw-la iudicium_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la quid_fw-la common_a cum_fw-la eo_fw-la habet_fw-la imperator_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la quando_fw-la iudicium_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la svam_fw-la ab_fw-la imperatore_n cepit_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la paulus_n apostolus_fw-la habebat_fw-la amicos_fw-la in_o caesaris_fw-la familia_fw-la &_o per_fw-la eos_fw-la in_o literis_fw-la salutabat_fw-la philippense_n 4._o philip._n 4._o non_fw-la tamen_fw-la eos_fw-la in_o iudidicio_fw-la socios_fw-la assumpsit_fw-la if_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n what_o have_v the_o emperor_n to_o do_v with_o it_o and_o contrariwise_o if_o these_o judgement_n be_v gather_v by_o the_o
preach_n of_o his_o own_o sensible_a doctrine_n according_a to_o his_o manhood_n even_o after_o the_o same_o rate_n 18._o deut._n 18._o as_o moses_n do_v while_o he_o live_v now_o in_o consyderation_n that_o christ_n will_v forsake_v this_o world_n concern_v his_o visible_a conversation_n and_o that_o he_o will_v go_v in_o his_o manhood_n to_o reign_v in_o heaven_n glorious_o over_o the_o glorious_a part_n of_o his_o church_n he_o institute_v a_o other_o particular_a rock_n and_o shepherd_n 21._o joan._n 21._o who_o by_o the_o outward_a preach_n and_o confess_v of_o his_o faith_n may_v for_o his_o life_n time_n stay_v the_o militant_a church_n of_o god_n in_o a_o right_a belefe_v as_o abraham_n or_o moses_n have_v do_v while_o they_o live_v 16_o matth._n 16_o this_o particular_a militant_a rock_n be_v s._n peter_n for_o the_o tyme._n but_o when_o he_o die_v he_o leave_v behind_o he_o still_o a_o particular_a militant_a church_n i_o call_v it_o particular_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o for_o ever_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v therefore_o some_o mortal_a man_n ought_v still_o to_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n who_o may_v so_o uphold_v the_o militant_a church_n by_o the_o assurance_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o confession_n as_o s._n peter_n do_v once_o uphold_v the_o same_o who_o likewise_o may_v still_o so_o confirm_v his_o brother_n as_o s._n peter_n be_v once_o will_v to_o confirm_v they_o 23._o matth._n 23._o all_o christian_n be_v brother_n among_o themselves_o but_o all_o bishop_n be_v brother_n in_o a_o nigh_a degree_n of_o holy_a government_n the_o rock_n therefore_o which_o shall_v strengthen_v both_o all_o the_o christian_n and_o namely_o all_o the_o bishop_n must_v continue_v so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v either_o bishop_n or_o christian_n in_o the_o earth_n the_o same_o reason_n be_v also_o find_v in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o pastor_n for_o as_o the_o flock_n of_o sheep_n continue_v after_o s._n peter_n death_n even_o so_o must_v such_o a_o other_o pastor_n as_o s._n peter_n be_v be_v make_v who_o may_v still_o feed_v and_o rule_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o s._n chrysostom_n say_v sacerdot_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr sacerdot_n christus_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la fudit_fw-la ut_fw-la pecudes_fw-la eas_fw-la acquireret_fw-la quarum_fw-la curam_fw-la tum_fw-la petro_n tum_fw-la petri_n successoribus_fw-la committebat_fw-la christ_n have_v shed_v his_o blood_n to_o get_v unto_o he_o those_o sheep_n the_o cure_n of_o who_o he_o do_v commit_v both_o to_o peter_n successor_n peter_n successor_n and_o to_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n in_o that_o very_a place_n it_o be_v be_v s._n chrysostom_n say_v that_o peter_n be_v endow_v praecellere_fw-la longè_n praecellere_fw-la with_o authority_n pass_v the_o other_o apostle_n a_o great_a way_n as_o therefore_o peter_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o feed_v pass_v the_o other_o apostle_n so_o must_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n pass_v a_o great_a way_n the_o successor_n of_o the_o other_o apostle_n which_o be_v all_o bishop_n for_o now_o chrysostome_n confess_v that_o the_o same_o care_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o peter_n himself_o assumpt_n serm_n 2_o in_o aniver_n assumpt_n with_o s._n chrysostom_n pope_n leo_n agreee_v say_v soliditas_fw-la illius_fw-la fidei_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o apostolorun_n principe_fw-la est_fw-la laudata_fw-la perpetua_fw-la est_fw-la et_fw-la sicut_fw-la permanet_fw-la ê_n in_o christo_n petrus_n credidit_fw-la ita_fw-la permanet_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o petro_n christus_fw-la instituit_fw-la the_o strength_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v praise_v in_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v everlasting_a and_o as_o that_o remain_v which_o peter_n beleve_v in_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n so_o do_v that_o remain_n which_o christ_n institute_v in_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o sure_a rock_n which_o may_v always_o confess_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ._n and_o leo_n show_v afterward_o how_o that_o remain_v which_o be_v ordain_v in_o s._n peter_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la he_o say_v in_o seed_n petri_n sva_fw-la vivit_fw-la potestas_fw-la excellit_fw-la authoritas_fw-la in_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n his_o power_n live_v his_o authority_n exell_v therefore_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v a_o ordinary_a power_n which_o have_v a_o ordinary_a succession_n in_o christ_n church_n these_o reason_n be_v so_o plain_a so_o strong_a so_o true_a so_o forceable_a that_o i_o muse_v what_o understanding_n what_o wit_n or_o sense_n they_o have_v who_o grant_v peter_n to_o have_v be_v the_o rock_n whereupon_o the_o church_n be_v build_v for_o the_o time_n which_o thing_n they_o must_v needs_o grant_v unless_o they_o will_v deny_v the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o perpetual_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o father_n yet_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o a_o other_o like_o rock_n shall_v be_v substitute_v after_o s._n peter_n very_o see_v the_o reason_n of_o s._n peter_n confession_n â_z vbi_fw-la eadem_fw-la ratio_fw-la idem_fw-la â_z and_o of_o his_o power_n be_v such_o as_o agree_v to_o a_o ordinary_a office_n of_o the_o church_n the_o office_n also_o of_o s._n peter_n be_v a_o rock_n of_o strengthen_v his_o brethren_n and_o of_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n be_v a_o ordinary_a office_n which_o have_v and_o must_v continue_v so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v a_o militant_a house_n of_o god_n in_o earth_n and_o so_o long_o as_o either_o any_o brother_n be_v who_o may_v be_v confirm_v or_o any_o sheep_n who_o need_n to_o be_v feed_v and_o very_o if_o s._n peter_n have_v no_o successor_n in_o his_o pastoral_a office_n what_o mean_a 3._o mean_a li._n 3._o c._n 3._o irenaeus_n schismate_fw-la irenaeus_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la schismate_fw-la optatus_n and_o 165._o and_o ep._n 165._o s._n augustine_n by_o name_n to_o reckon_v up_o such_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n as_o have_v live_v till_o every_o of_o their_o age_n and_o tyme._n moreover_o whereas_o noman_n except_v the_o case_n of_o necessity_n may_v right_o preach_v to_o they_o to_o who_o he_o be_v not_o send_v 10._o rom._n 10._o if_o as_o every_o particular_a pastor_n have_v as_o s._n cyprian_n teach_v a_o portion_n of_o the_o flock_n assign_v to_o his_o government_n 3_o lib._n 1._o ep_v 3_o for_o which_o he_o shall_v be_v accountable_a unto_o our_o lord_n so_o there_o be_v not_o some_o general_a pastor_n always_o in_o the_o church_n who_o beside_o his_o particular_a charge_n may_v send_v other_o to_o preach_v unto_o they_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o convert_v and_o who_o when_o they_o be_v convert_v may_v erect_v new_a church_n and_o plant_v new_a bishoprike_v in_o those_o party_n as_o s._n gregory_n do_v in_o england_n if_o there_o be_v not_o some_o 1._o beda_n li._n 1._o c._n 23._o &_o 27._o tit._n 1._o who_o may_v as_o paul_n say_v correct_v the_o thing_n which_o lack_v and_o also_o control_v other_o bisshoppe_n when_o they_o be_v negligent_a and_o who_o may_v excommunicate_v even_o those_o christian_n which_o live_v in_o no_o particular_a diocese_n but_o be_v conversant_a among_o the_o jew_n or_o painim_n do_v there_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n and_o thence_o do_v write_v heretical_a book_n or_o treatise_n if_o i_o say_v there_o be_v not_o some_o general_a pastor_n who_o may_v summon_v all_o other_o bisshoppe_n to_o general_n or_o provincial_a counsel_n and_o may_v change_v the_o former_a positive_a law_n of_o the_o church_n when_o either_o necessititie_n or_o charity_n require_v it_o and_o who_o may_v either_o make_v two_o bisshoppe_n where_o one_o be_v before_o or_o unite_v two_o into_o one_o 35._o greg._n li._n 2._o epist_n 31._o &_o 35._o or_o commit_v the_o cure_n of_o any_o see_v or_o chair_n vacant_a to_o the_o next_o bishop_n and_o so_o in_o all_o case_n may_v provide_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n flock_n it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o house_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o well_o provide_v for_o as_o other_o mean_a state_n and_o common_a weal_n be_v but_o if_o there_o be_v a_o power_n in_o god_n church_n whereby_o all_o the_o former_a case_n may_v be_v well_o provide_v for_o see_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o apostolic_a power_n be_v end_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o high_a pastoral_a power_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o shall_v procure_v these_o affair_n and_o consequent_o the_o high_a pastoral_a office_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v a_o ordinary_a office_n which_o cease_v not_o with_o his_o own_o death_n but_o be_v tranfer_v to_o his_o successor_n as_o it_o shall_v far_o appear_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n save_v one_o that_o the_o ordinary_a authority_n of_o s._n peter_n primacy_n belonge_v to_o one_o bishop_n alone_o the_o xiiii_o chap._n saint_n peter_n have_v not_o only_o the_o same_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v commit_v to_o he_o alone_o which_o be_v give_v in_o common_a to_o all_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o